Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n see_v write_v year_n 3,146 5 4.6224 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A06753 A treatise of the groundes of the old and newe religion Deuided into two parts, whereunto is added an appendix, containing a briefe confutation of William Crashaw his first tome of romish forgeries and falsifications. Maihew, Edward, 1570-1625. 1608 (1608) STC 17197.5; ESTC S118525 390,495 428

There are 47 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

a_o heretic_n or_o a_o heresy_n then_o to_o condemn_v a_o heretical_a or_o erroneous_a book_n second_o authority_n to_o do_v this_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o preservation_n of_o one_o true_a faith_n and_o religion_n in_o the_o church_n for_o what_o be_v more_o dangerous_a to_o infect_v true_a christian_a heart_n then_o bad_a book_n especial_o if_o they_o be_v not_o know_v and_o censure_v to_o be_v such_o but_o read_v by_o all_o sort_n indifferent_o as_o catholic_a and_o orthodoxal_a very_o if_o conference_n and_o conversation_n with_o heretic_n be_v so_o straight_o antonius_n straight_o rom._n 16_o 17._o 2._o tim._n 3._o v._n 5._o titus_n 3._o v._o 10_o 2._o john_n v._n 10._o i●●n_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o cipr._n l._n 1._o ep_v 3_o athanas_n in_o vita_fw-la antonius_n forbid_v we_o both_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n as_o we_o find_v much_o more_o be_v their_o book_n to_o be_v avoid_v which_o diverse_a time_n contain_v poison_v colour_v with_o eloquence_n which_o may_v always_o be_v have_v at_o hand_n and_o be_v easy_o disperse_v ever_o in_o such_o place_n unto_o which_o heretic_n can_v have_v access_n hence_o the_o very_a heathen_n themselves_o lead_v by_o reason_n and_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n only_o 39_o only_o plato_n lib._n 7._o de_fw-la legibus_fw-la valer._n maxi._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o cicero_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr nature_n deorum_fw-la lact._n l._n de_fw-fr ira_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 9_o sueton._n in_o august_n cap._n 31._o dio_fw-mi case_n l._n 54_o titus_n livius_n lib._n 39_o condemn_a book_n hurtful_a and_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o religion_n by_o they_o receive_v as_o i_o can_v prove_v out_o of_o plato_n valerius_n maximus_n cicero_n lactantius_n suetonius_n diocassius_n titus_n livius_n and_o other_o four_o the_o church_n have_v in_o all_o age_n practise_v such_o authority_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o ecclesiastical_a record_n i_o will_v name_v only_o a_o few_o example_n because_o i_o will_v not_o be_v over_o long_o s._n clement_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o 7._o the_o clemens_n lib._n 1._o constit_fw-la apostol_n cap._n 7._o apostle_n themselves_o forbid_v the_o faithful_a to_o read_v the_o book_n of_o the_o gentile_n about_o the_o year_n 250._o dionysius_n alexandrinus_n as_o eusebius_n 6._o eusebius_n euseb_n lib._n 7._o hist_o cap._n 6._o record_v be_v reprehend_v by_o other_o faithful_a people_n for_o read_v the_o book_n of_o heretic_n 1._o heretic_n ciril_n epist_n synod_n 1._o in_o the_o year_n 432._o the_o father_n assemble_v in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o ephesus_n request_v of_o theodosius_n then_o emperor_n that_o he_o will_v take_v order_n that_o the_o book_n of_o nestorius_n wheresoever_o they_o be_v find_v shall_v be_v burn_v and_o according_a to_o their_o request_n the_o say_a emperor_n by_o his_o imperial_a constitution_n 10_o constitution_n l._n ult._n de_fw-fr haeret_fw-la cod._n theodos_n laberatus_n in_o breviar_n c._n 10_o will_v that_o all_o such_o book_n shall_v be_v diligent_o seek_v for_o and_o public_o commit_v to_o the_o fire_n hierosolim_n fire_n anast_n epist_n ad_fw-la joan._n hierosolim_n s._n anastasius_n the_o pope_n at_o rome_n and_o s._n epiphanius_n in_o a_o synod_n hold_v at_o cyprus_n with_o diverse_a other_o about_o the_o year_n 402._o 26._o 402._o socrat._n li._n 6._o cap._n 9_o see_v s._n hieron_n ep_v 26._o condemn_v the_o book_n of_o origines_fw-la call_v periarchon_n which_o ruffinus_n to_o the_o great_a hurt_n of_o the_o church_n have_v publish_v before_o in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o didimus_n in_o the_o east_n s._n leo_n the_o great_a burn_v great_a store_n of_o the_o manichee_n book_n in_o rome_n as_o 443_o as_o prosper_v in_o chronic._n 443_o prosper_n write_v in_o the_o year_n 443._o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n permit_v only_a bishop_n to_o read_v heretical_a book_n in_o time_n of_o necessity_n gelasius_n the_o pope_n in_o a_o council_n of_o seaventy_n bishop_n hold_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 494._o romana_fw-la 494._o distinct_a 15._o can._n sancta_fw-la romana_fw-la sentence_v diverse_a book_n and_o make_v a_o certain_a index_n of_o they_o as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o decree_n yet_o extant_a the_o five_o general_a council_n about_o the_o year_n 553._o condemn_v certain_a thing_n write_v by_o theodoretus_n against_o s._n ciril_n and_o the_o epistle_n of_o iba_n and_o all_o those_o book_n except_o those_o of_o nestorius_n be_v thus_o 6._o thus_o socrates_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 6._o censure_v long_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o author_n haereticis_fw-la author_n see_v l._n damnato_fw-la council_n chalced._n act_n 3._o l._n quicunque_fw-la cod._n de_fw-la haereticis_fw-la the_o like_a example_n i_o can_v bring_v of_o the_o proceed_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a against_o the_o book_n of_o arius_n 10._o l._n ult._n tit_n 16._o lib._n 9_o &_o leg_n 24._o tit_n 4._o l._n 16_o cod._n theod._n socrat._n lib._n 2._o histor_n tripartitae_fw-la liberat._v in_o breviario_fw-la cap._n 10._o who_o prohibit_v they_o under_o pain_n of_o death_n of_o valentinian_n and_o martian_a christian_a emperor_n against_o those_o of_o eutiches_n and_o apollinaris_n of_o honorius_n and_o theodosius_n against_o book_n of_o art_n magic_n yea_o arcadius_n honorius_n and_o justinian_n by_o their_o law_n decree_v that_o all_o heretical_a book_n shall_v be_v burn_v public_o and_o this_o practice_n perhaps_o of_o burn_v such_o book_n begin_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o as_o s._n luke_n write_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 19_o apostle_n act._n 19_o 19_o many_o of_o they_o that_o follow_v curious_a thing_n bring_v together_o their_o book_n and_o burn_v they_o before_o al._n now_o see_v the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o condemn_v or_o burn_v heretical_a book_n or_o other_o that_o contain_v false_a doctrine_n opposite_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n no_o man_n of_o any_o judgement_n will_v deny_v but_o she_o have_v also_o authority_n to_o correct_v they_o if_o by_o that_o mean_v she_o can_v make_v they_o profitable_a for_o her_o use_n and_o beneficial_a to_o her_o child_n for_o much_o less_o it_o be_v to_o correct_v then_o to_o condemn_v and_o burn_v and_o much_o better_a it_o be_v in_o such_o case_n to_o correct_v then_o clean_o to_o abolish_v hence_o be_v these_o word_n of_o s._n hierome_n speak_v of_o the_o work_n of_o origen_n ruffin_n hieron_n epist_n 76._o idem_fw-la epist_n 64._o &_o apolog_n 1._o adversus_fw-la ruffin_n neither_o be_v his_o evil_a opinion_n to_o be_v receive_v for_o his_o doctrine_n neither_o be_v his_o commentary_n if_o he_o write_v any_o upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n altogether_o to_o be_v reject_v for_o the_o wickedness_n of_o his_o opinion_n thus_o s._n hierome_n who_o upon_o this_o ground_n new_o translate_v and_o amend_v the_o book_n of_o origen_n before_o mention_v in_o like_a sort_n the_o collation_n of_o cassian_n be_v long_o after_o his_o death_n correct_v by_o diverse_a as_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o cassiodorus_n and_o ado._n and_o although_o this_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v such_o fine_a cassiod_n institut_fw-la divin_v lect_v cap._n 29._o ado_n in_o chronic_n a_o 425._o in_o fine_a that_o with_o discretion_n and_o to_o edification_n she_o may_v execute_v it_o against_o any_o whatsoever_o yet_o much_o more_o reason_n &_o right_n she_o have_v to_o execute_v it_o upon_o the_o work_n of_o her_o child_n who_o be_v her_o subject_n &_o submit_v themselves_o and_o their_o work_n whole_o to_o her_o censure_n some_o man_n perhaps_o will_v say_v that_o every_o catholic_a do_v not_o so_o submit_v himself_o and_o his_o work_n but_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o so_o either_o express_o or_o virtual_o be_v no_o catholic_a because_o he_o prefer_v his_o own_o judgement_n before_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o whosoever_o do_v this_o although_o through_o ignorance_n he_o err_v as_o every_o man_n may_v he_o be_v no_o heretic_n according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n augustine_n i_o may_v err_v i_o can_v be_v a_o heretic_n see_v that_o the_o one_o be_v proper_a to_o a_o man_n the_o other_o to_o a_o perverse_a and_o obstinate_a wil._n and_o out_o of_o this_o discourse_n i_o conclude_v that_o if_o our_o church_n be_v catholic_a as_o it_o be_v we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o our_o proceed_n in_o forbid_v and_o correct_v such_o book_n as_o oppose_v themselves_o any_o way_n against_o our_o religion_n or_o may_v seduce_v the_o heart_n of_o their_o simple_a reader_n or_o any_o way_n seem_v to_o taste_v of_o a_o heretical_a kind_n of_o speech_n or_o phrase_n although_o the_o author_n themselves_o diverse_a time_n intend_v no_o hurt_n and_o this_o must_v much_o more_o be_v grant_v unto_o we_o in_o modern_a author_n and_o such_o as_o have_v write_v in_o this_o last_o age_n both_o because_o they_o submit_v themselves_o common_o in_o express_a term_n to_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o also_o because_o by_o the_o
late_a order_n of_o the_o church_n nothing_o must_v be_v publish_v in_o print_n except_o it_o be_v first_o view_v and_o allow_v by_o man_n thereunto_o authorize_v wherefore_o whatsoever_o come_v now_o forth_o seem_v to_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o a_o man_n may_v well_o infer_v that_o it_o contain_v no_o notorious_a error_n or_o heresy_n whereof_o i_o infer_v that_o the_o church_n in_o case_n that_o any_o such_o error_n escape_v must_v be_v very_o diligent_a and_o vigilant_a in_o mend_v of_o they_o lest_o that_o in_o stead_n of_o wholesome_a doctrine_n some_o ignorant_o perhaps_o and_o that_o through_o her_o default_n drink_v poison_n but_o yet_o to_o descend_v a_o little_a low_o what_o book_n may_v we_o correct_v according_a to_o our_o rule_n and_o of_o what_o antiquity_n none_o certain_o of_o any_o catholic_n but_o such_o as_o live_v since_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o and_o fifteen_o which_o be_v the_o second_o year_n before_o luther_n begin_v to_o fall_v from_o we_o beside_o a_o few_o other_o express_o name_v in_o our_o index_n of_o forbid_a book_n and_o of_o such_o name_v author_n more_o ancient_a than_o luther_n how_o many_o have_v we_o the_o facto_fw-la correct_v very_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o crashaw_n can_v bring_v forth_o so_o much_o as_o one_o true_a it_o be_v that_o he_o use_v these_o word_n 2._o in_o the_o epistle_n dedicatory_a fol._n 2._o we_o produce_v the_o author_n that_o live_v and_o write_v long_o before_o luther_n but_o we_o find_v they_o so_o raze_v and_o alter_v as_o some_o that_o speak_v for_o we_o be_v now_o silent_a yea_o some_o that_o make_v for_o we_o be_v now_o against_o we_o thus_o he_o but_o how_o he_o will_v prove_v it_o i_o do_v not_o know_v he_o name_v soon_o after_o vives_z erasmus_n cardinal_n cajetane_n ferus_fw-la stella_fw-la espencaeus_fw-la oleaster_n and_o faber_n but_o all_o these_o either_o live_v in_o luther_n day_n or_o since_o and_o for_o my_o part_n i_o have_v peruse_v a_o little_a his_o book_n and_o i_o can_v find_v any_o one_o author_n name_v that_o live_v not_o either_o in_o luther_n day_n or_o after_o 3._o in_o his_o testimony_n of_o john_n ferus_fw-la d._n 3._o only_a bertramus_n and_o rampegolus_n except_v who_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v be_v not_o yet_o correct_v he_o make_v much_o ado_n about_o ferus_fw-la but_o what_o be_v he_o and_o when_o live_v he_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_a friar_n in_o profession_n although_o diverse_a of_o his_o sentence_n seem_v to_o taste_v of_o lutheranisme_n he_o flourish_v as_o 3._o as_o crashaw_n in_o his_o testimony_n of_o john_n ferus_fw-la d._n 3._o crashaw_n confess_v in_o the_o year_n 1530._o that_o be_v thirteen_o year_n after_o luther_n first_o breach_n from_o we_o which_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1517._o yea_o in_o the_o next_o leaf_n he_o confess_v he_o to_o have_v be_v alive_a in_o the_o year_n 1552._o more_o than_o thirty_o year_n after_o luther_n say_a beginning_n but_o perhaps_o some_o man_n will_v say_v that_o he_o publish_v the_o book_n which_o we_o have_v correct_v before_o luther_n fall_n neither_o be_v this_o true_a for_o the_o most_o ancient_a copy_n that_o he_o can_v name_v of_o those_o book_n he_o speak_v of_o be_v print_v in_o the_o year_n 1555._o almost_o 40._o year_n after_o that_o luther_n first_o impugn_a we_o 2._o prolegomena_n f._n 2._o as_o appear_v by_o his_o own_o grant_n and_o hence_o a_o man_n may_v both_o gather_v how_o well_o he_o prove_v his_o aforesaid_a assertion_n affirm_v that_o they_o produce_v the_o author_n that_o live_v and_o write_v long_o before_o luther_n but_o find_v they_o raze_v etc._n etc._n and_o also_o perceive_v how_o true_a that_o his_o accusation_n be_v they_o have_v corrupt_v all_o author_n of_o this_o last_o two_o hundred_o year_n 3._o prologo_fw-la e._n 3._o for_o as_o i_o have_v say_v i_o think_v that_o he_o can_v hardly_o name_v one_o author_n that_o we_o have_v correct_v of_o any_o age_n before_o luther_n i_o can_v as_o yet_o find_v but_o one_o name_v throughout_o his_o book_n which_o be_v of_o the_o age_n immediate_o before_o luther_n departure_n from_o we_o and_o whether_o he_o be_v correct_v or_o no_o i_o know_v not_o nevertheless_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o two_o hundred_o year_n of_o much_o less_o truth_n be_v that_o follow_v in_o which_o he_o say_v we_o have_v raze_v the_o record_n of_o high_a antiquity_n reach_v up_o to_o some_o that_o live_v 500_o and_o 800._o year_n ago_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la for_o all_o this_o be_v speak_v if_o it_o have_v any_o colour_n of_o truth_n for_o any_o thing_n i_o can_v find_v in_o his_o book_n or_o other_o where_n of_o one_o bertramus_n who_o he_o aver_v that_o we_o have_v alter_v 2._o ibid._n §._o c._o 2._o but_o it_o be_v more_o than_o ever_o i_o see_v or_o hear_v and_o yet_o not_o content_v with_o this_o he_o go_v a_o great_a deal_n further_o and_o avouch_v that_o our_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la have_v so_o use_v almost_o all_o book_n in_o the_o world_n i_o may_v here_o use_v one_o of_o his_o ordinary_a exclamation_n and_o begin_v as_o i_o find_v the_o first_o word_n of_o that_o page_n oh_o intolerable_a injury_n for_o first_o we_o have_v a_o express_a inhibition_n that_o no_o man_n touch_v the_o text_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n 4._o de_fw-fr correctione_n librorum_fw-la §._o 3._o &_o 4._o nor_o of_o any_o catholic_n that_o write_v before_o the_o year_n 1515._o not_o specify_v and_o censure_v in_o the_o index_n of_o forbid_a book_n then_o we_o meddle_v not_o with_o any_o book_n of_o archeretike_n or_o with_o such_o as_o treat_v profess_o of_o heresy_n and_o so_o we_o exclude_v from_o our_o correction_n all_o the_o work_n of_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la caluin_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o book_n of_o this_o age_n and_o out_o of_o this_o that_o in_o like_a sort_n appear_v false_a which_o he_o say_v of_o corrupt_v all_o such_o late_a writer_n as_o we_o imagine_v any_o way_n to_o make_v against_o we_o so_o that_o we_o only_o have_v correct_v or_o intend_v to_o correct_v some_o few_o of_o which_o most_o have_v write_v since_o this_o new_a gospel_n begin_v to_o be_v preach_v other_o very_o few_o in_o number_n live_v in_o deed_n before_o the_o year_n 1515._o but_o be_v name_v in_o our_o index_n and_o beside_o these_o no_o other_o can_v be_v touch_v neither_o be_v all_o these_o correct_v for_o heresy_n as_o will_v appear_v to_o the_o reader_n by_o such_o rule_n as_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o correction_n of_o which_o more_o hereafter_o but_o they_o be_v partly_o set_v down_o by_o crashaw_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o his_o prolegomena_n i_o can_v final_o but_o note_n bibliotheca_fw-la prolegom_n e._n 3._o gesnerus_fw-la in_o bibliotheca_fw-la that_o he_o call_v ferus_fw-la a_o old_a and_o famous_a writer_n who_o according_a to_o his_o own_o confession_n be_v live_v within_o these_o threescore_o year_n nay_o i_o think_v it_o may_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o gesnerus_fw-la that_o he_o die_v not_o forty_o year_n since_o but_o to_o save_v this_o he_o add_v in_o the_o margin_n that_o he_o mean_v old_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o jesuite_n who_o now_o say_v he_o carry_v all_o before_o they_o for_o he_o be_v in_o the_o ear_n when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o blade_n this_o be_v his_o marginal_a note_n by_o which_o he_o save_v but_o ill_a the_o truth_n of_o the_o text_n let_v his_o meaning_n be_v as_o it_o will_v for_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o jesuite_n begin_v about_o the_o year_n 1521._o and_o be_v confirm_v by_o paulus_n 3_o pope_n about_o the_o year_n 1540_o long_v before_o ferus_fw-la die_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n and_o this_o it_o seem_v he_o well_o know_v for_o it_o may_v plain_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o his_o preface_n that_o the_o jesuite_n be_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1563._o but_o to_o clear_v we_o further_o from_o all_o blame_n touch_v this_o point_n i_o must_v also_o add_v this_o in_o our_o defence_n that_o this_o our_o manner_n of_o proceed_v be_v neither_o to_o the_o end_n to_o bereave_v our_o adversary_n of_o any_o proof_n which_o our_o adversary_n may_v bring_v out_o of_o antiquity_n or_o any_o modern_a author_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o religion_n nor_o to_o strengthen_v our_o cause_n for_o although_o i_o shall_v yield_v that_o all_o the_o author_n who_o crashaw_n name_v be_v protestant_n which_o yet_o he_o confess_v to_o be_v false_a for_o he_o grant_v they_o be_v all_o catholic_n what_o shall_v i_o in_o effect_n help_v their_o cause_n or_o weaken_v we_o suppose_v some_o name_v that_o live_v before_o luther_n hold_v some_o opinion_n with_o wickliff_n hierome_n of_o prage_n and_o john_n husse_v what_o be_v this_o to_o we_o do_v
such_o instruction_n as_o be_v give_v he_o say_v and_o such_o thing_n as_o do_v require_v correction_n or_o purgation_n be_v these_o and_o then_o he_o begin_v to_o rehearse_v what_o our_o index_n will_v to_o be_v correct_v but_o so_o false_o as_o he_o may_v be_v very_o well_o ashamed_a of_o his_o deal_n for_o whereas_o the_o instruction_n command_v that_o all_o thing_n that_o taste_v of_o superstition_n witchcraft_n or_o divination_n be_v reject_v likewise_o that_o all_o be_v blot_v out_o that_o make_v man_n freewill_a subject_n to_o destiny_n false_a or_o deceitful_a sign_n or_o ethnic_n fortune_n and_o that_o such_o thing_n as_o savour_n of_o paganism_n be_v abolish_v that_o jest_n or_o merry_a conceit_n &_o quip_n toss_v to_o the_o hurt_n or_o prejudice_n of_o the_o fame_n and_o credit_n of_o other_o be_v abandon_v that_o thing_n wanton_a and_o dishonest_a which_o may_v corrupt_v good_a manner_n be_v remove_v final_o that_o unseemly_a and_o dishonest_a picture_n be_v deface_v he_o leave_v out_o all_o this_o and_o that_o without_o all_o doubt_n to_o make_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o we_o correct_v book_n for_o no_o other_o matter_n but_o to_o make_v they_o agree_v with_o we_o in_o religion_n and_o to_o this_o end_n it_o may_v be_v imagine_v that_o before_o he_o leave_v out_o the_o seven_o and_o nine_o rule_n whole_o which_o be_v against_o wanton_a book_n book_n of_o chiromancy_n nicromancy_n etc._n etc._n and_o what_o false_a and_o unconscionable_a deal_n be_v this_o very_o this_o be_v a_o foul_a fault_n in_o any_o man_n but_o in_o m._n crashaw_n who_o take_v upon_o he_o unjust_o to_o censure_v other_o for_o the_o like_a proceed_n this_o be_v intolerable_a and_o no_o man_n can_v do_v less_o according_a to_o his_o own_o ground_n then_o condemn_v he_o of_o corruption_n and_o forgery_n in_o the_o high_a degree_n sans._n relation_n of_o the_o state_n of_o religion_n use_v in_o the_o western_a part_n §._o 36._o print_a anno_o 1605._o write_v as_o be_v say_v by_o sir_n edwine_n sans._n very_o a_o certain_a protestant_a traveler_n report_v that_o we_o have_v our_o several_a office_n for_o purge_v the_o world_n from_o the_o infection_n of_o all_o the_o wicked_a and_o corrupt_a book_n and_o passage_n which_o be_v either_o against_o honesty_n or_o good_a manner_n who_o indeed_o say_v he_o blot_v out_o much_o impiousness_n and_o filth_n and_o therein_o deserve_v to_o be_v commend_v and_o imitate_v and_o thus_o i_o think_v i_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o our_o adversary_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v pronounce_v guilty_a of_o such_o crime_n as_o crashaw_n impose_v upon_o we_o concern_v corruption_n of_o book_n than_o we_o touch_v our_o prohibition_n of_o certain_a book_n i_o add_v only_o that_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o we_o forbid_v their_o book_n and_o suffer_v they_o not_o to_o be_v read_v of_o all_o sort_n so_o they_o forbid_v we_o as_o their_o statute_n testify_v and_o for_o this_o also_o be_v more_o to_o be_v blame_v than_o we_o that_o our_o book_n forbid_v by_o they_o maintain_v and_o defend_v a_o old_a religion_n teach_v and_o leave_v we_o by_o our_o forefather_n they_o forbid_a by_o we_o a_o new_a devise_v in_o this_o last_o age_n by_o luther_n carolostadius_fw-la zwinglius_fw-la caluin_n and_o such_o companion_n i_o will_v dispatch_v the_o last_o point_n in_o few_o word_n wherefore_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o by_o we_o corrupt_v i_o bring_v these_o three_o brief_a reason_n first_o this_o our_o practice_n of_o make_v such_o indices_fw-la expurgatorij_fw-la have_v be_v but_o very_o late_a as_o crashaw_n himself_o confess_v in_o those_o his_o word_n long_o be_v the_o mother_n church_n of_o rome_n in_o breed_v her_o indices_fw-la expurgatorios_fw-la at_o last_o she_o bring_v they_o out_o reader_n crashaw_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n or_o rather_o some_o politic_a jesuite_n conceive_v they_o the_o father_n of_o trent_n bear_v they_o and_o the_o pope_n bring_v they_o out_o thus_o crashaw_n out_o of_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o we_o use_v no_o such_o indices_fw-la before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o hence_o proceed_v a_o other_o reason_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o general_a rule_n or_o order_v set_v down_o by_o the_o church_n for_o correct_v any_o one_o father_n work_n this_o be_v manifest_a because_o have_v the_o church_n take_v order_n for_o any_o such_o matter_n there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n make_v but_o such_o sentence_n also_o as_o favour_v millinarisme_n arianisme_n donatisme_n nestorianisme_n and_o other_o such_o like_a heresy_n which_o in_o those_o day_n oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o church_n have_v be_v put_v out_o rather_o than_o such_o as_o our_o adversary_n pretend_v make_v for_o they_o see_v that_o we_o can_v find_v no_o record_n that_o any_o of_o their_o sort_n oppose_v themselves_o in_o those_o time_n against_o us._n further_o the_o art_n of_o print_v book_n be_v unknown_a at_o the_o least_o to_o our_o part_n of_o the_o world_n before_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1440._o as_o all_o history_n of_o that_o age_n testify_v wherefore_o the_o work_n of_o the_o father_n before_o those_o day_n be_v write_v by_o diverse_a person_n and_o in_o diverse_a place_n by_o diverse_a man_n that_o know_v not_o what_o one_o another_o do_v which_o copy_n be_v yet_o extant_a of_o which_o i_o infer_v that_o except_o some_o general_a rule_n for_o all_o have_v be_v prescribe_v it_o have_v be_v impossible_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v all_o conspire_v to_o have_v corrupt_v the_o father_n by_o add_v or_o detract_n the_o self_n same_o word_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o we_o see_v that_o all_o the_o write_a copy_n of_o the_o father_n work_n agree_v &_o contain_v the_o same_o sentence_n much_o less_o can_v we_o have_v corrupt_v the_o father_n work_n if_o those_o of_o our_o side_n be_v only_o a_o faction_n and_o diverse_a in_o faith_n agree_v with_o our_o adversary_n who_o always_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o we_o or_o at_o the_o least_o secret_o retain_v their_o belief_n as_o field_n affirm_v 8._o field_n book_n 3_o of_o the_o church_n chap._n 6._o 7._o 8._o for_o than_o it_o be_v like_a that_o some_o of_o they_o preserve_v the_o father_n work_n from_o corruption_n final_o this_o open_v the_o way_n to_o the_o zwenckfeldians_n &_o libertine_n who_o reject_v all_o scripture_n for_o of_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o father_n a_o man_n may_v well_o infer_v the_o corruption_n also_o of_o they_o neither_o can_v these_o by_o better_a reason_n be_v free_v from_o such_o a_o imputation_n than_o those_o but_o here_o some_o man_n will_v occur_v and_o say_v 14._o perkins_n in_o problem_n praepar_fw-la add_v demonst_a in_o cyprian_n pa._n 14._o that_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n manifest_a that_o we_o have_v corrupt_v s._n cyprian_n book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n to_o establish_v the_o pope_n supreamacy_n and_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o he_o will_v allege_v that_o which_o m._n thomas_n james_n have_v write_v in_o his_o 176._o his_o catalogue_n ox_n onio_fw-la cantabrig_n lib._n 2._o pag._n 176._o catalogue_n of_o the_o manu-script_n book_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n and_o cambridge_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v four_o manu-script_n copy_n of_o s._n cyprian_n work_n in_o the_o library_n of_o these_o university_n in_o which_o certain_a sentence_n be_v not_o find_v especial_o such_o as_o make_v for_o the_o pope_n supreamacy_n which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o all_o print_a copy_n of_o this_o book_n of_o which_o he_o infer_v that_o it_o be_v like_a that_o we_o have_v corrupt_v the_o say_a book_n and_o that_o according_a to_o our_o corruption_n it_o be_v corrupt_o print_v i_o answer_v brief_o first_o that_o although_o we_o shall_v grant_v this_o to_o be_v true_a which_o james_n say_v that_o such_o manuscript_n copy_n be_v find_v which_o nevertheless_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v except_o i_o see_v or_o hear_v it_o better_o prove_v yet_o of_o this_o it_o can_v be_v infer_v that_o the_o work_n of_o s._n cyprian_n be_v corrupt_o print_v first_o because_o more_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o all_o the_o manu-script_n copy_n throughout_o the_o world_n which_o without_o doubt_n be_v some_o hundred_o then_o to_o these_o four_o and_o that_o all_o other_o agree_v with_o the_o print_a book_n it_o seem_v evident_a by_o diverse_a reason_n but_o principal_o because_o no_o man_n ever_o before_o note_v any_o such_o diversity_n yet_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o who_o as_o james_n do_v grant_v have_v print_v his_o work_n will_v have_v note_v it_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o such_o matter_n find_v in_o the_o manu-script_n copy_n of_o the_o country_n where_o his_o book_n be_v publish_v by_o they_o nay_o far_o 11._o centuriator_fw-la 3._o cap._n 4._o colum_fw-la 84._o
which_o be_v the_o right_a and_o straight_o rule_v by_o which_o all_o our_o thought_n and_o action_n be_v to_o be_v square_v and_o try_v of_o my_o reader_n therefore_o if_o he_o be_v a_o protestant_n i_o desire_v no_o more_o but_o that_o he_o bring_v his_o hart_n and_o will_n to_o this_o disposition_n if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o dispose_v already_o that_o he_o be_v desirous_a to_o serve_v god_n in_o his_o true_a church_n and_o cast_v off_o all_o obstinacy_n he_o be_v indifferent_a either_o to_o this_o or_o that_o so_o that_o he_o may_v be_v thorough_o inform_v of_o the_o truth_n last_o that_o he_o humble_o crave_v of_o god_n that_o if_o his_o belief_n be_v not_o right_a he_o will_v merciful_o vouchsafe_v to_o give_v he_o grace_n and_o mean_n whereby_o he_o may_v find_v out_o the_o truth_n and_o because_o i_o esteem_v this_o disposition_n in_o that_o protestant_n which_o intend_v to_o read_v this_o treatise_n to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n towards_o his_o conversion_n i_o think_v it_o convenient_a brief_o here_o to_o touch_v among_o diverse_a other_o which_o occur_v some_o two_o motive_n which_o in_o my_o judgement_n be_v very_o sufficient_a to_o draw_v any_o man_n from_o obstinacy_n in_o the_o new_a religion_n yea_o be_v he_o of_o what_o sect_n soever_o to_o make_v he_o doubtful_a of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o that_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o he_o profess_v of_o these_o the_o first_o shall_v be_v that_o as_o many_o i_o may_v say_v more_o and_o as_o virtuous_a and_o as_o learned_a even_o of_o the_o protestant_a side_n condemn_v his_o say_a faith_n and_o religion_n as_o erroneous_a as_o there_o do_v approve_v it_o as_o true_a for_o if_o he_o be_v a_o zwinglian_n a_o caluinist_n or_o a_o english_a protestant_n although_o his_o temporal_a magistrate_n and_o his_o learned_a master_n tell_v he_o that_o he_o be_v of_o a_o sound_a belief_n and_o a_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n church_n yet_o luther_n and_o all_o the_o lutheran_n affirm_v in_o plain_a term_n and_o that_o with_o great_a vehemency_n nevertheless_o deliberate_o and_o advise_o that_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o consequent_o be_v guilty_a of_o that_o crime_n which_o the_o 29._o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n 1._o pa._n 28._o 29._o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n avouch_v to_o be_v a_o forsake_v of_o salvation_n a_o renounce_n of_o god_n grace_n a_o depart_n from_o the_o body_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n this_n not_o only_o the_o work_n of_o luther_n and_o the_o lutheran_n but_o also_o of_o diverse_a sacramentary_n so_o the_o zwinglian_o caluinist_n and_o english_a protestant_n be_v common_o call_v testify_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n luther_n in_o one_o place_n write_v thus_o coenae_fw-la thus_o luther_n thes_n 21._o cont_n lovaniens_fw-la &_o to_o 7._o in_o defin_n ver_fw-la borum_fw-la coenae_fw-la we_o serious_o judge_v the_o zwinglian_o and_o all_o sacramentary_n to_o be_v heretic_n and_o alien_n from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o a_o other_o book_n of_o the_o same_o sectary_n he_o have_v these_o word_n 383._o word_n idem_fw-la tom_fw-mi 7_o in_o defence_n verborum_fw-la coenae_fw-la fol._n 383._o touch_v the_o soul_n and_o matter_n spiritual_a we_o will_v avoid_v they_o as_o long_o as_o we_o have_v a_o day_n to_o live_v we_o will_v reprove_v and_o condemn_v they_o for_o idolater_n corrupter_n of_o god_n word_n blaspheamer_n and_o deceiver_n and_o of_o they_o as_o of_o enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o will_v sustain_v persecution_n and_o spoil_n of_o our_o good_n whatsoever_o they_o shall_v do_v unto_o we_o so_o long_o as_o god_n will_v permit_v thus_o luther_n hence_o also_o the_o zwinglian_o of_o zuricke_n complain_v that_o luther_n 4._o luther_n confessio_fw-la orthodoxa_fw-la eccles_n tigurinae_fw-la in_o praefat_fw-la fol._n 3._o 4._o inveigh_v against_o they_o as_o against_o obstinate_a heretic_n and_o such_o as_o be_v guilty_a to_o themselves_o of_o all_o impiety_n as_o against_o prophaner_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o most_o vile_a and_o pestilent_a man_n that_o go_v on_o the_o ground_n by_o his_o 108._o his_o ibid._n tract_n 3._o fol._n 108._o last_o confession_n by_o they_o likewise_o record_v it_o appear_v that_o he_o continue_v in_o this_o mind_n even_o to_o his_o die_a day_n and_o who_o among_o all_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n be_v general_o prefer_v by_o the_o follower_n of_o all_o sect_n before_o luther_n the_o sacramentary_n themselves_o who_o he_o damn_v to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n most_o high_o commend_v he_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n a_o book_n write_v by_o m._n jewel_n and_o approve_a by_o the_o best_a english_a protestant_n yea_o much_o angl._n much_o martyr_v ep_n ad_fw-la juellun_n prae_fw-la fixa_fw-la apolog._n eccles_n angl._n praise_v by_o peter_n martyr_v and_o other_o foreign_a follower_n of_o zwinglius_fw-la and_o caluin_n term_v he_o 1600._o he_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n 4._o pag._n 124._o print_v anno_o 1600._o a_o most_o excellent_a man_n even_o send_v of_o god_n to_o give_v light_n to_o the_o world_n whitaker_n affirm_v 85._o affirm_v whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o campian_n 3._o reason_n pag._n 85._o his_o name_n be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o that_o his_o memory_n shall_v ever_o be_v sacred_a among_o all_o good_a man_n and_o he_o add_v 259._o add_v idem_fw-la in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o 8._o reason_n pag._n 259._o that_o they_o reverence_v he_o as_o father_n field_n a_o doctor_n of_o the_o english_a church_n now_o live_v aver_v 65._o aver_v ficl_n book_n 3_o of_o the_o church_n ch_n 42._o p._n 170._o see_v also_o whetenhal_v a_o puritan_n in_o his_o discourse_n of_o the_o abuse_n etc._n etc._n print_a anno_o 1606._o pag._n 64._o 65._o he_o be_v a_o most_o worthy_a divine_a as_o the_o world_n have_v any_o in_o those_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v or_o in_o many_o age_n before_o who_o happy_a memory_n say_v he_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o sundry_a point_n of_o great_a moment_n in_o our_o christian_a religion_n all_o succeed_a age_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o honour_n see_v then_o that_o this_o most_o excellent_a man_n send_v by_o god_n to_o give_v light_n to_o the_o world_n who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o who_o memory_n shall_v ever_o be_v sacred_a among_o all_o good_a man_n send_v forth_o these_o glister_a beam_n of_o light_n unto_o we_o that_o the_o sacramentary_n be_v damn_v heretic_n idolater_n blaspheamer_n corrupter_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n deceiver_n and_o enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n see_v this_o most_o worthy_a divine_a reverence_v by_o our_o english_a protestant_n as_o a_o father_n pronounce_v this_o so_o hard_a a_o censure_n against_o his_o child_n what_o sacramentary_a be_v thus_o censure_v if_o he_o will_v proceed_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o reason_n can_v do_v otherwise_o then_o mistrust_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o belief_n which_o of_o the_o sacramentary_n have_v deserve_v or_o obtain_v such_o commendation_n of_o the_o lutheran_n as_o luther_n have_v here_o of_o the_o sacramentary_n very_o caluin_n himself_o who_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n our_o english_a church_n and_o most_o sacramentary_n do_v now_o embrace_v be_v most_o bitter_o revile_v and_o condemn_v by_o they_o al._n nay_o one_o of_o they_o write_v that_o 72._o that_o conradus_n schlussel_n in_o theolog._n caluinist_n lib._n 2._o fol._n 72._o god_n also_o in_o this_o world_n show_v his_o judgement_n against_o caluin_n who_o he_o visit_v say_v he_o in_o the_o ●odde_n of_o his_o anger_n and_o horrible_o punish_v before_o the_o dreadful_a hour_n of_o his_o unhappy_a death_n for_o god_n with_o his_o potent_a hand_n i_o use_v his_o word_n so_o strike_v this_o heretic_n that_o have_v despair_v of_o his_o salvation_n have_v call_v upon_o devil_n swear_v curse_a and_o blaspheme_a most_o miserable_o be_v yield_v up_o his_o wicked_a ghost_n but_o caluin_n die_v of_o the_o lousy_a disease_n worm_n so_o increase_v in_o a_o imposthume_n or_o most_o stink_a ulcer_n about_o his_o privy_a member_n that_o none_o of_o the_o stander_n by_o can_v any_o long_o endure_v the_o stink_n thus_o conradus_n schlusselburge_n a_o lutheran_n report_v caluins_n death_n as_o he_o avouch_v out_o of_o public_a writing_n of_o which_o he_o see_v no_o sound_a refutation_n what_o sacramentary_a then_o can_v just_o compare_v any_o one_o of_o his_o learned_a master_n with_o luther_n or_o think_v that_o luther_n err_v &_o some_o one_o of_o they_o attain_v to_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n see_v that_o luther_n have_v and_o read_v the_o same_o scripture_n out_o of_o which_o his_o master_n affirm_v they_o have_v draw_v their_o doctrine_n and_o use_v in_o every_o respect_n as_o good_a mean_n to_o come_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o they_o as_o his_o say_a master_n can_v
and_o moreover_o that_o this_o be_v luther_n opinion_n it_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o 19_o of_o caluin_n instit_fw-la c._n 16._o §_o 19_o caluin_n and_o 243._o and_o whitaker_n in_o his_o answ_n to_o campian_n 8._o reason_n p._n 243._o whitaker_n beside_o this_o he_o hold_v that_o the_o soul_n depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n sleep_n and_o be_v without_o sense_n or_o feeling_n neither_o in_o heaven_n nor_o in_o hell_n and_o so_o shall_v remain_v until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n but_o of_o this_o point_n of_o his_o doctrine_n see_v more_o in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o my_o treatise_n follow_v i_o can_v likewise_o omit_v his_o etc._n his_o luther_n in_o serm_n de_fw-fr sacram._n coenae_fw-la to_o 2._o f._n 112._o etc._n etc._n opinion_n concern_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n in_o every_o place_n together_o with_o his_o divinity_n of_o which_o proceed_v these_o word_n of_o zwinglius_fw-la unto_o he_o 401._o he_o zwingl_n in_o respon_n ad_fw-la luther_n l._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la f._n 401._o if_o thou_o shall_v contumacious_o go_v on_o in_o this_o sentence_n that_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n jesus_n be_v essential_o and_o corporal_o present_a wheresoever_o be_v his_o divinity_n god_n will_v we_o will_v bring_v thou_o to_o those_o strait_n that_o either_o thou_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o deny_v the_o whole_a scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o to_o acknowledge_v martion_n heresy_n this_o i_o say_v in_o good_a faith_n we_o promise_v we_o will_v do_v thus_o zwinglius_fw-la and_o by_o this_o heresy_n defend_v by_o the_o lutheran_n of_o his_o time_n caluin_n etc._n caluin_n caluin_n instit_fw-la book_n 4._o ch_z 17._o §._o 16._o etc._n etc._n zw_v l._n tom_n 2._o ep_n ad_fw-la quandam_fw-la germaniae_fw-la civitatem_fw-la fol._n 196._o lib._n de_fw-fr baptis_n fol._n 63._o etc._n etc._n avouch_v that_o martion_n be_v raise_v up_o out_o of_o hell_n the_o genevian_a divine_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n publish_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n and_o belgia_n term_v it_o that_o unhappy_a monster_n of_o ubiquity_n which_o if_o it_o be_v admit_v say_v they_o will_v quite_o overthrow_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n person_n and_o nature_n but_o of_o luther_n enough_o zwinglius_fw-la doctrine_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n be_v most_o profane_a for_o he_o make_v they_o only_o external_a sign_n and_o deny_v they_o any_o inward_a effect_n in_o the_o soul_n wherefore_o as_o i_o have_v before_o note_v it_o be_v worthy_o condemn_v and_o reject_v not_o only_o by_o luther_n and_o his_o follower_n but_o also_o in_o word_n by_o 1._o by_o caluin_n lib._n de_fw-la coena_fw-la &_o l._n 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 15._o §._o 1._o caluin_n moreover_o 12._o moreover_o zwingl_n in_o exposit_n fidei_fw-la chrstianae_fw-la art_n 12._o zwinglius_fw-la also_o place_v hercules_n theseus_n socrates_n numa_n camillus_n the_o cato_n scipion_n and_o other_o pagan_n and_o idolater_n with_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n and_o apostle_n in_o heaven_n of_o which_o his_o assertion_n luther_n discourse_v thus_o genes_n thus_o luther_n ad_fw-la c._n 47._o genes_n zwinglius_fw-la of_o late_a have_v write_v that_o numa_n pompilius_n hector_n scipio_n hercules_n enjoy_v eternal_a bliss_n in_o heaven_n with_o peter_n paul_n &_o other_o saint_n which_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n then_o open_o to_o confess_v that_o he_o think_v there_o be_v no_o faith_n no_o christianisme_n etc._n etc._n he_o add_v much_o more_o against_o he_o and_o of_o this_o infer_v that_o zwinglius_fw-la be_v of_o that_o mind_n that_o a_o man_n do_v his_o best_a may_v be_v save_v in_o any_o religion_n whatsoever_o which_o in_o very_a deed_n be_v express_o by_o he_o teach_v in_o 118_o in_o zwingl_n to_o 2._o in_o declarat_fw-la de_fw-fr peccato_fw-la original_a f._n 118_o another_o place_n nevertheless_o this_o doctrine_n of_o zwinglius_fw-la touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o infidel_n be_v maintain_v by_o zwinglij_fw-la by_o rodolph_n gualterus_n in_o apolog_n pro_fw-la libris_fw-la zwinglij_fw-la rodolphus_n gualterus_n figurinae_n gualterus_n bullinger_n in_o germani_n confess_v eccles_n figurinae_n bullenger_n etc._n bullenger_n simlerus_n in_o vita_fw-la bullingeri_n etc._n etc._n simlerus_n daniel_n tossanus_n and_o other_o sacramentary_n but_o no_o opinion_n of_o zwinglius_fw-la be_v more_o impious_a and_o sacrilegious_a then_o that_o by_o which_o he_o make_v god_n the_o author_n and_o cause_n of_o sin_n in_o uphold_v which_o blaspheamous_a impiety_n john_n caluin_n join_v hand_n with_o he_o if_o it_o be_v not_o that_o i_o shall_v exceed_v the_o brevity_n of_o a_o preface_n i_o will_v manifest_o convince_v they_o guilty_a of_o this_o crime_n by_o their_o own_o print_a work_n publish_v to_o the_o view_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o i_o will_v here_o put_v off_o this_o manner_n of_o proof_n to_o another_o place_n and_o now_o only_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o my_o accusation_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o learned_a protestant_n albertus_n grawerus_n rector_n of_o the_o lutheran_n university_n of_o eislebium_n in_o germany_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1597._o publish_v a_o book_n with_o this_o title_n the_o war_n of_o john_n caluin_n and_o of_o jesus_n christ_n god_n and_o man_n that_o be_v a_o antithesis_fw-la or_o opposition_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o caluinist_n and_o of_o christ_n in_o which_o the_o most_o horrible_a blaspheamy_n of_o the_o caluinist_n especial_o concern_v four_a article_n the_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n baptism_n and_o predestination_n be_v faithful_o show_v from_o the_o eye_n to_o the_o eye_n out_o of_o their_o own_o proper_a writing_n and_o book_n and_o be_v brief_o and_o sound_o refell_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n thus_o have_v the_o title_n and_o this_o book_n have_v be_v print_v three_o time_n among_o the_o lutheran_n for_o i_o have_v see_v the_o three_o edition_n print_v at_o magdeburge_n in_o the_o year_n 1605._o so_o plausible_a be_v it_o to_o the_o lutheran_n church_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v oppugn_v and_o answer_v by_o some_o caluinist_n the_o same_o author_n reply_v with_o a_o other_o book_n unto_o which_o he_o give_v this_o title_n absurda_fw-la absurdorum_fw-la absurdissima_fw-la caluinistica_n absurda_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o absurd_a the_o most_o absurd_a of_o absurd_a caluinistical_a absurd_a thing_n that_o be_v a_o invincible_a demonstration_n logical_a philosophical_a theological_a of_o some_o horrible_a paradox_n of_o the_o caluinian_a doctrine_n in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n baptism_n and_o predestination_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n write_v by_o m._n albert_n grawere_v rector_n of_o the_o famous_a university_n of_o eislebium_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o mansfeld_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o caluinian_a war_n etc._n etc._n cum_fw-la gratia_fw-la &_o privilegio_fw-la at_o magdeburge_n a_o 1605._o hitherto_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o title_n that_o which_o make_v in_o these_o book_n for_o my_o present_a purpose_n be_v that_o which_o he_o deliver_v concern_v the_o opinion_n of_o caluin_n and_o the_o caluinist_n touch_v the_o predestination_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n for_o in_o the_o forefront_n of_o the_o last_o treatise_n after_o the_o title_n of_o the_o book_n this_o lutheran_n place_v this_o sillogisme_n quodcunque_fw-la dogma_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o opinion_n soever_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o of_o god_n the_o caluinian_a opinion_n make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o minor_a or_o second_o proposition_n which_o be_v that_o the_o caluinian_a doctrine_n make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n he_o refer_v his_o reader_n to_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n follow_v in_o which_o in_o very_a deed_n he_o manifest_o prove_v it_o by_o diverse_a sentence_n allege_v out_o of_o caluin_n beza_n and_o other_o sacramentary_n perhaps_o some_o man_n will_v demand_v what_o be_v this_o to_o zwinglius_fw-la i_o answer_v although_o zwinglius_fw-la in_o very_a deed_n be_v proper_o no_o caluinist_n for_o he_o be_v before_o caluin_n yet_o because_o now_o the_o caluinist_n bear_v all_o the_o sway_n and_o have_v almost_o eat_v up_o the_o zwinglian_o as_o also_o because_o the_o difference_n between_o zwinglius_fw-la and_o caluin_n be_v not_o great_a and_o notorious_a it_o please_v the_o lutheran_n to_o number_n zwinglius_fw-la among_o the_o caluinist_n yea_o to_o call_v all_o the_o sacramentary_n caluinist_n hence_o grawerus_n among_o other_o caluinist_n make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n often_o allege_v zwinglius_fw-la and_o prove_v he_o guilty_a of_o the_o same_o impiety_n they_o be_v likewise_o accuse_v of_o make_v of_o god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n by_o luke_n osiander_n another_o lutheran_n who_o have_v relate_v and_o confute_v certain_a their_o assertion_n touch_v christ_n thus_o begin_v the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n 198._o
treatise_n which_o i_o intend_v i_o will_v add_v only_o a_o word_n or_o two_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o nourish_a of_o our_o body_n to_o make_v the_o food_n which_o we_o receive_v fit_a for_o our_o stomach_n we_o have_v in_o our_o mouth_n two_o sort_n of_o tooth_n some_o sharp_a to_o divide_v it_o other_o something_o flat_a or_o plain_a to_o grind_v it_o with_o the_o tongue_n we_o remove_v it_o from_o place_n to_o place_n when_o it_o be_v sufficient_o chaw_v through_o the_o throat_n it_o be_v convey_v into_o the_o stomach_n where_o as_o in_o a_o pot_n or_o caldron_n by_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o hart_n and_o liver_n it_o be_v boil_v and_o bring_v all_o to_o one_o kind_n of_o substance_n from_o thence_o the_o pure_a and_o best_a part_n thereof_o by_o subtle_a and_o small_a passage_n be_v convey_v to_o the_o liver_n the_o gross_a part_n which_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o nutriment_n be_v cast_v out_o at_o the_o fundament_n the_o liver_n have_v receive_v the_o say_a substance_n boil_v it_o again_o and_o turn_v it_o into_o blood_n that_o which_o be_v superfluous_a it_o send_v it_o to_o other_o place_n as_o to_o the_o spleen_n and_o gall_n the_o rest_n it_o disperse_v by_o the_o vein_n throughout_o the_o whole_a body_n which_o be_v partly_o turn_v into_o flesh_n and_o bone_n a_o part_n of_o it_o be_v send_v to_o the_o hart_n which_o be_v there_o purify_v be_v turn_v into_o vital_a spirit_n some_o be_v send_v to_o the_o brain_n and_o turn_v into_o other_o spirit_n which_o we_o call_v animal_fw-la these_o consideration_n be_v sufficient_a to_o persuade_v every_o man_n that_o there_o be_v one_o supreme_a god_n of_o infinite_a power_n and_o wisdom_n who_o have_v create_v and_o most_o wise_o and_o sweet_o dispose_v all_o thing_n hence_o the_o prophet_n david_n cry_v out_o unto_o god_n in_o the_o psalm_n 24._o psal_n 103._o ver_fw-la 24._o how_o high_a or_o wonderful_a o_o lord_n be_v thy_o work_n thou_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n in_o wisdom_n the_o earth_n be_v fill_v with_o thy_o possession_n or_o riches_n sure_o if_o we_o look_v into_o the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o any_o one_o creature_n whatsoever_o we_o shall_v not_o only_o see_v 3._o eccles_n 3._o ver_fw-la 14._o galen_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la usu_fw-la partium_fw-la &_o lib._n 5._o psal_n 99_o vers_fw-la 3._o that_o as_o the_o wiseman_n say_v we_o can_v add_v to_o or_o take_v anythinge_v from_o the_o creature_n of_o god_n and_o that_o god_n as_o galen_n the_o prince_n of_o all_o physician_n although_o a_o pagan_a confess_v have_v adorn_v and_o beautify_v the_o creature_n of_o this_o world_n better_a than_o by_o any_o art_n possible_a it_o can_v have_v be_v imagine_v but_o also_o if_o we_o demand_n of_o each_o creature_n who_o make_v it_o it_o will_v seem_v to_o make_v answer_n god_n make_v i_o and_o i_o make_v not_o myself_o according_a as_o the_o psalm_n say_v of_o we_o man_n he_o make_v we_o and_o we_o make_v not_o ourselves_o some_o atheist_n perhaps_o will_v say_v that_o all_o creature_n be_v thus_o frame_v and_o order_v not_o by_o any_o supreme_a governor_n have_v understanding_n and_o power_n to_o effect_v such_o matter_n but_o by_o chance_n i_o reply_v that_o like_a as_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o a_o number_n of_o letter_n or_o character_n cast_v together_o without_o any_o order_n of_o syllable_n word_n or_o sentence_n shall_v make_v a_o perfect_a book_n contain_v most_o wise_a learned_a and_o methodical_a discourse_n so_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v so_o exquisite_o order_v and_o thing_n so_o ordain_v one_o to_o another_o by_o chance_n without_o the_o wisdom_n and_o disposition_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o this_o confutation_n of_o this_o fond_a assertion_n be_v use_v long_o since_o by_o cicero_n a_o ethnic_n wherefore_o deorum_fw-la cicero_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la natura_fw-la deorum_fw-la like_v as_o every_o man_n will_v worthy_o account_v he_o a_o fool_n that_o shall_v say_v that_o a_o book_n contain_v wise_a and_o orderly_a discourse_n be_v make_v by_o chance_n by_o the_o cast_n together_o of_o diverse_a character_n or_o letter_n or_o that_o a_o house_n most_o curious_o and_o artificial_o build_v be_v make_v without_o the_o handy_a work_n of_o any_o artificer_n by_o the_o accidentary_a concourse_n of_o stone_n mortar_n timber_n and_o other_o such_o like_a stuff_n so_o we_o may_v well_o esteem_v he_o a_o fool_n and_o void_a of_o all_o reason_n and_o understanding_n who_o deny_v that_o the_o world_n be_v create_v and_o order_v by_o almighty_a god_n hence_o the_o psalm_n say_v the_o fool_n say_v in_o his_o hart_n 1_o ps_n 13._o v._n 1_o there_o be_v no_o god_n and_o note_n it_o be_v not_o say_v he_o say_v with_o his_o mouth_n but_o in_o his_o hart_n to_o signify_v that_o this_o assertion_n be_v so_o absurd_a ridiculous_a and_o blasphemous_a that_o a_o fool_n although_o he_o think_v it_o true_a in_o his_o hart_n yet_o may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o utter_v it_o with_o his_o mouth_n to_o the_o argument_n already_o bring_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o matter_n i_o add_v that_o this_o truth_n be_v manifest_o deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o which_o be_v contain_v the_o history_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n by_o god_n and_o diverse_a other_o evident_a proof_n be_v find_v of_o the_o be_v of_o his_o divine_a majesty_n this_o no_o atheist_n will_v or_o can_v deny_v but_o all_o of_o they_o answer_n that_o the_o scripture_n contain_v but_o fable_n and_o be_v of_o no_o authority_n i_o reply_v that_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v show_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o these_o divine_a book_n aught_o to_o be_v great_a in_o any_o wiseman_n judgement_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v prove_v by_o diverse_a learned_a author_n first_o by_o their_o antiquity_n for_o no_o volume_n in_o the_o world_n be_v so_o ancient_a as_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n and_o consequent_o we_o may_v infer_v that_o moses_n himself_o the_o first_o writer_n receive_v the_o true_a history_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v before_o his_o own_o day_n by_o succession_n and_o tradition_n from_o his_o predecessor_n for_o which_o it_o make_v that_o abraham_n the_o father_n of_o the_o jew_n may_v well_o have_v see_v sem_fw-mi the_o son_n of_o no_o of_o other_o thing_n he_o be_v a_o eye_n witness_v himself_o second_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o verity_n of_o diverse_a prophecy_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v fulfil_v long_o after_o that_o the_o book_n themselves_o be_v write_v which_o be_v a_o manifest_a demonstration_n that_o such_o thing_n be_v foretell_v by_o god_n who_o only_o know_v and_o can_v certain_o fortel_v thing_n contingent_a and_o depend_v of_o man_n free_a will_n of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o such_o prophecy_n and_o the_o book_n in_o which_o they_o be_v find_v be_v write_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n three_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o wonderful_a consent_n of_o all_o these_o book_n for_o although_o they_o be_v pen_v by_o diverse_a man_n in_o diverse_a place_n upon_o diverse_a occasion_n and_o at_o sundry_a time_n yet_o no_o one_o of_o they_o contain_v any_o one_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o other_o job._n gre._n praefat_fw-la in_o job._n of_o which_o s._n gregory_n well_o infer_v that_o the_o writer_n hand_n be_v the_o pen_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o same_o be_v likewise_o demonstrate_v by_o the_o test_n money_n of_o diverse_a miracle_n which_o have_v be_v wrought_v always_o in_o the_o world_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v teach_v we_o in_o these_o book_n by_o the_o miraculous_a preservation_n of_o they_o throughout_o all_o age_n by_o the_o admirable_a consent_n of_o the_o seaventy_n two_o interpreter_n which_o be_v appoint_v by_o ptólomie_n king_n of_o egypt_n to_o translate_v they_o and_o sundry_a other_o reason_n which_o i_o can_v stand_v to_o relate_v neither_o do_v the_o miracle_n and_o prophecy_n above_o say_v and_o all_o other_o such_o like_a effect_n and_o action_n only_o confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o also_o evident_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n who_o only_o be_v omnipotent_a and_o can_v work_v effect_n surpass_v the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o natural_a and_o create_v agent_n such_o miracle_n and_o prophecy_n can_v be_v deny_v to_o have_v be_v find_v in_o the_o world_n in_o all_o age_n of_o which_o we_o have_v any_o large_a record_n except_o we_o will_v obstinate_o reject_v the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o all_o man_n i_o may_v join_v to_o this_o that_o although_o god_n be_v but_o one_o in_o essence_n yet_o he_o be_v three_o in_o person_n for_o although_o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v but_o one_o most_o pure_a and_o simple_a substance_n not_o divide_v yet_o the_o self_n same_o be_v in_o three_o distinct_a
such_o misery_n through_o diverse_a disease_n that_o he_o 8._o he_o philost_n lib._n 8._o wish_v for_o one_o that_o will_v kill_v he_o severus_n be_v often_o put_v in_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n by_o his_o own_o son_n antoninus_n who_o as_o he_o think_v intend_v also_o to_o murder_v his_o other_o son_n geta_n take_v think_v &_o grief_n come_v to_o his_o end_n lampridius_n end_n lampridius_n alexander_n be_v murder_v in_o germany_n trebellius_n germany_n trebellius_n maximinus_n gallus_n volusianus_n and_o gallienus_n receive_v their_o death_n from_o their_o own_o soldier_n 1._o soldier_n euseb_n in_o hist_o lib._n 7._o cap._n 1._o decius_n not_o have_v reign_v two_o year_n lose_v his_o life_n in_o war_n against_o the_o goth_n 11._o goth_n eus_n l._n 7._o ca._n 9_o trebel_n &_o alij_fw-la constantius_n in_fw-la orat_fw-la ad_fw-la sancto_fw-la coetum_fw-la c._n 24_o see_v euseb_n in_o vita_fw-la const_n li._n 4._o c._n 11._o valerianus_n by_o treason_n be_v deliver_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n the_o king_n of_o persia_n who_o for_o a_o time_n use_v he_o for_o a_o footstool_n to_o go_v to_o his_o horse_n afterward_o he_o flay_v he_o alive_a and_o powder_v he_o with_o salt_n aurelianus_n strike_v from_o heaven_n with_o thunder_n soon_o after_o be_v murder_v by_o his_o own_o company_n vopisous_n company_n vopisous_n dioclesianus_n and_o maximianus_n herculeus_n because_o they_o can_v not_o according_a to_o their_o endeavour_n prevail_v against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o root_v out_o all_o christianity_n give_v over_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o they_o the_o victor_n the_o panegir_n 4._o victor_n first_o live_v so_o long_o as_o a_o private_a man_n until_o he_o see_v christian_a religion_n flourish_v under_o constantine_n the_o great_a than_o he_o die_v miserable_o according_a to_o eusebius_n but_o victor_n say_v that_o he_o be_v report_v to_o have_v poison_v himself_o 29._o himself_o euseb_n li._n 8._o ca._n 18._o &_o 29._o maximianus_n afterwards_o either_o be_v hang_v or_o hang_v himself_o gallerius_n maximianus_n be_v strike_v by_o god_n with_o a_o most_o horrible_a disease_n be_v force_v before_o his_o death_n to_o recall_v his_o own_o &_o other_o edict_n make_v against_o christian_n maximinus_n likewise_o be_v overcome_v by_o licinius_n recall_v such_o edict_n in_o the_o east_n and_o take_v moreover_o with_o a_o most_o strange_a disease_n his_o eye_n fall_v out_o of_o his_o head_n die_v miserable_o confess_v that_o such_o calamity_n fall_v upon_o he_o for_o his_o cruelty_n use_v against_o christian_n licinius_n be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o constantine_n the_o great_a julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la in_o battle_n against_o the_o persian_n strike_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o dart_n blaspheme_v christ_n as_o author_n of_o his_o death_n yield_v up_o the_o ghost_n and_o these_o be_v the_o principal_a heathen_a emperor_n that_o have_v persecute_v our_o religion_n to_o who_o i_o add_v two_o arrian_n emperor_n constantius_n and_o valens_n who_o impugn_a the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o persecute_v catholic_n for_o profess_v he_o to_o be_v equal_a and_o consubstantial_a to_o his_o father_n other_o father_n hier._n ep_v ad_fw-la heliodor_n victor_n amianus_n &_o other_o of_o they_o the_o first_o die_v miserable_o in_o a_o country_n village_n march_v against_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la other_o apostata_fw-la hie._n ruffel_n &_o other_o the_o other_o have_v receive_v the_o overthrow_n from_o the_o goth_n be_v burn_v by_o they_o alive_a in_o a_o country_n house_n these_o calamity_n &_o misery_n as_o every_o man_n must_v needs_o confess_v be_v extraordinary_a and_o fall_v upon_o these_o man_n for_o some_o sin_n or_o misdemeanour_n of_o they_o and_o see_v that_o common_o they_o fall_v upon_o all_o the_o persecutor_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o common_o upon_o no_o other_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o their_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o say_a misery_n and_o calamity_n i_o can_v add_v diverse_a other_o reason_n convince_a christian_n religion_n to_o be_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n as_o that_o most_o wise_a man_n and_o most_o profound_a and_o deep_a scholar_n most_o expert_a in_o all_o science_n and_o most_o perfect_a in_o those_o language_n which_o seem_v most_o needful_a to_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o true_a religion_n have_v approve_v and_o embrace_v christian_a doctrine_n i_o can_v also_o bring_v another_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o purity_n and_o sanctity_n of_o the_o say_a religion_n and_o general_o of_o all_o the_o true_a professor_n of_o the_o same_o other_o take_v from_o the_o absurdity_n of_o all_o those_o that_o can_v make_v any_o challenge_n to_o this_o prerogative_n from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o professor_n of_o diverse_a other_o sect_n etc._n etc._n but_o i_o shall_v be_v overlong_o only_o i_o will_v add_v against_o the_o jew_n who_o have_v the_o truth_n among_o they_o before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n that_o present_o after_o the_o promulgation_n of_o our_o religion_n they_o fall_v into_o most_o gross_a and_o fantastical_a opinion_n yea_o hold_v and_o teach_v most_o execrable_a blasphemy_n concern_v god_n himself_o &_o other_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o that_o god_n do_v weep_v bewail_v shed_v tear_n and_o knock_v his_o breast_n for_o sorrow_n that_o he_o have_v so_o punish_v they_o that_o he_o pray_v upon_o his_o knee_n that_o he_o sin_v in_o take_v unjust_o light_a from_o the_o sun_n and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o moon_n that_o he_o have_v be_v deceive_v by_o some_o rabbin_n that_o he_o study_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n that_o soul_n pass_v from_o one_o body_n to_o another_o and_o much_o other_o such_o like_a damnable_a doctrine_n which_o every_o man_n may_v see_v approve_v in_o their_o talmud_n 12._o see_v andraeas_n masius_n in_o c._n 5._o josue_n v._o 10._o eugubinus_n in_o exo._n c._n 12._o a_o book_n as_o high_o esteem_v by_o they_o all_o as_o the_o old_a testament_n itself_o for_o they_o profess_v in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o say_a book_n that_o whosoever_o deni_v it_o deni_v god_n himself_o nay_o i_o add_v further_o against_o they_o that_o in_o this_o their_o talmud_n itself_o it_o be_v deliver_v as_o a_o ancient_a &_o famous_a tradition_n that_o their_o messiah_n be_v to_o restore_v they_o to_o liberty_n on_o the_o same_o month_n and_o day_n of_o the_o year_n on_o which_o they_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o egypt_n which_o tradition_n most_o apt_o agree_v to_o the_o time_n on_o which_o our_o lord_n suffer_v as_o every_o christian_a know_v and_o of_o this_o matter_n this_o shall_v suffice_v out_o of_o the_o discourse_n of_o this_o chapter_n i_o likewise_o infer_v that_o no_o other_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o the_o christian_a be_v true_a or_o do_v true_o worship_n god_n which_o be_v manifest_a both_o because_o no_o other_o follow_v the_o precept_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n the_o redeemer_n of_o mankind_n and_o also_o because_o our_o saviour_n abolish_v all_o former_a law_n except_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n yea_o he_o abrogate_a even_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n itself_o which_o be_v receive_v from_o god_n and_o according_a to_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n institute_v one_o only_a law_n and_o through_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o bitter_a passion_n establish_v one_o only_a church_n which_o only_o possess_v true_a religion_n and_o prescribe_v according_a to_o his_o institution_n the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o this_o i_o think_v no_o man_n that_o believe_v christian_a religion_n to_o be_v true_a will_v deny_v chapter_n 4._o that_o among_o christian_n they_o only_o that_o profess_v and_o embrace_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o do_v true_o worship_v god_n in_o the_o chapter_n next_o before_o i_o have_v declare_v that_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o true_a religion_n be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v among_o christian_n now_o i_o go_v further_o and_o affirm_v that_o all_o christian_n can_v true_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o these_o inestimable_a treasure_n but_o that_o they_o be_v due_a only_o to_o we_o catholic_n before_o this_o i_o have_v dispute_v against_o atheist_n infidel_n jew_n and_o other_o external_a enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o i_o use_v not_o any_o argument_n take_v out_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o they_o with_o one_o consent_n reject_v now_o i_o be_o to_o deal_v with_o heretic_n who_o pretend_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n but_o have_v depart_v out_o of_o christ_n fold_n yet_o admit_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o sundry_a book_n not_o only_o of_o the_o old_a but_o also_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o therefore_o against_o these_o i_o will_v allege_v as_o occasion_n shall_v serve_v diverse_a sentence_n out_o of_o the_o say_a book_n by_o they_o admit_v and_o to_o proceed_v orderly_o in_o this_o matter_n i_o will_v bring_v my_o
doubtful_a authority_n for_o it_o be_v record_v by_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n and_o also_o confess_v by_o our_o adversary_n that_o there_o have_v be_v controversy_n and_o doubt_n in_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o 23._o the_o euseb_n li._n 3._o hist_o ca._n 3._o 25._o 28._o hier._n de_fw-fr viris_fw-la illust_n in_o paulo_n petro_n etc._n etc._n hammer_n in_o his_o note_n upon_o eusebius_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 23._o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o hebrews_n the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n s._n jude_n the_o second_o of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o second_o of_o s._n john_n how_o doubtful_a the_o authority_n of_o the_o dardaran_n the_o euse_n l._n 3._o cap._n 28._o hier._n epist_n 129._o add_v dardaran_n apocalypse_n be_v among_o many_o every_o man_n may_v see_v in_o s._n hierome_n and_o eusebius_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n which_o number_v it_o not_o among_o other_o canonical_a book_n and_o who_o have_v take_v up_o and_o end_v these_o controversy_n by_o declare_v these_o parcel_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v canonical_a but_o our_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n very_o this_o be_v so_o true_a and_o evident_a that_o it_o be_v confess_v even_o by_o some_o of_o our_o section_n our_o observation_n upon_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n upon_o the_o 1._o section_n adversary_n themselves_o thus_o she_o receive_v in_o the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a the_o book_n of_o judith_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 325._o if_o we_o believe_v judith_n believe_v hier._n praefat_fw-la in_o jud._n idem_fw-la in_o prolo_fw-la galeato_fw-la &_o in_o prol_n prover._n &_o in_o praefat_fw-la in_o judith_n s._n hierome_n who_o before_o he_o hear_v of_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o say_a council_n reject_v the_o say_a book_n but_o understand_v of_o it_o admit_v it_o forthwith_o as_o canonical_a let_v we_o confirm_v all_o this_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n who_o 25_o who_o caluin_n li._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 14._o sess_v 25_o caluin_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o most_o faithful_a witness_n of_o all_o antiquity_n 12._o antiquity_n beza_n in_o cap._n 3._o ad_fw-la rom._n v._n 12._o beza_n call_v he_o the_o prince_n of_o all_o ancient_a divine_n both_o greek_n and_o latin_a as_o concern_v dogmatical_a point_n of_o religion_n 96._o religion_n gomarus_n in_o speculo_fw-la verae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la pag._n 96._o gomarus_n say_v that_o according_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n he_o be_v account_v most_o pure_a this_o then_o be_v one_o of_o his_o notable_a sentence_n touch_v this_o matter_n 5._o matter_n aug._n contra_fw-la epistol_n manichaei_n quam_fw-la vocant_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la cap._n 5._o i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n say_v he_o except_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v move_v i_o thereunto_o those_o therefore_o who_o i_o obey_v say_v believe_v you_o the_o gospel_n why_o shall_v i_o not_o obey_v they_o say_v unto_o i_o believe_v thou_o not_o manichaeus_n choose_v which_o thou_o will_v if_o thou_o shall_v say_v believe_v the_o catholic_n they_o admonish_v i_o that_o i_o believe_v not_o you_o if_o thou_o shall_v say_v believe_v not_o the_o catholic_n thou_o shall_v not_o do_v well_o to_o constrain_v i_o by_o the_o gospel_n to_o believe_v manichaeus_n because_o i_o have_v believe_v the_o gospel_n itself_o through_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o catholic_n thus_o s._n augustine_n but_o here_o 4._o here_o field_n book_n 4._o chap._n 4._o m._n field_n in_o his_o four_o book_n of_o the_o church_n occur_v and_o say_v that_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o those_o his_o word_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n except_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v move_v i_o thereunto_o be_v that_o he_o have_v never_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o be_v a_o introduction_n unto_o he_o i_o reply_v that_o he_o wre_v this_o holy_a father_n word_n to_o a_o wrong_a sense_n yea_o to_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o his_o discourse_n itself_o will_v not_o bear_v and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o i_o desire_v no_o more_o of_o my_o reader_n but_o to_o mark_v the_o force_n of_o the_o reason_n use_v by_o s._n augustine_n which_o be_v this_o manichaeus_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o epistle_n which_o this_o most_o learned_a doctor_n confute_v call_v himself_o a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n s._n augustine_n require_v a_o proof_n of_o his_o apostleship_n and_o urge_v if_o perhaps_o he_o allege_v some_o authority_n out_o of_o the_o gospel_n what_o he_o will_v do_v to_o he_o that_o shall_v deny_v the_o gospel_n whereunto_o he_o adjoin_v the_o word_n rehearse_v i_o true_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o move_v i_o thereunto_o and_o out_o of_o this_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v believe_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n he_o prove_v that_o manichaeus_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v because_o the_o same_o authority_n which_o command_v to_o do_v the_o one_o forbid_v to_o do_v the_o other_o of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o it_o err_v in_o the_o last_o it_o may_v also_o err_v in_o the_o first_o and_o so_o no_o firm_a argument_n can_v be_v bring_v out_o of_o it_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o apostleship_n of_o manichaeus_n hence_o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o say_v i_o have_v not_o beleve_v the_o gospel_n except_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n have_v move_v i_o thereunto_o as_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v if_o he_o have_v mean_v as_o field_n pretend_v but_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n take_v his_o argument_n from_o the_o motive_n of_o his_o present_a belief_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n his_o reason_n be_v of_o great_a force_n and_o not_o otherwise_o but_o that_o which_o i_o say_v be_v yet_o more_o confirm_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v for_o s._n augustine_n add_v but_o if_o peradventure_o thou_o can_v find_v something_o in_o the_o gospel_n most_o apparent_a for_o the_o apostleship_n of_o manichaeus_n thou_o shall_v weaken_v unto_o i_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n who_o command_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o believe_v thou_o which_o be_v weaken_v now_o neither_o can_v i_o believe_v the_o gospel_n because_o through_o they_o i_o believe_v it_o so_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bring_v i_o from_o thence_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o of_o no_o force_n wherefore_o if_o nothing_o manifest_a be_v find_v in_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o apostleship_n of_o manichaeus_n i_o will_v believe_v the_o catholic_n rather_o then_o thou_o but_o if_o thou_o bring_v any_o thing_n from_o thence_o manifest_a for_o the_o apostleship_n of_o manichaeus_n i_o will_v neither_o believe_v they_o nor_o thou_o not_o they_o because_o they_o have_v lie_v to_o i_o concern_v thou_o not_o thou_o also_o because_o thou_o bring_v i_o forth_o that_o scripture_n which_o i_o believe_v through_o they_o who_o i_o have_v find_v liar_n but_o god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n hitherto_o be_v s._n augustine_n word_n by_o which_o i_o think_v every_o man_n may_v perceive_v how_o great_o m._n field_n do_v wrong_v he_o for_o we_o see_v plain_o that_o he_o confess_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o present_a belief_n of_o scripture_n yet_o not_o the_o formal_a cause_n but_o the_o conditional_a as_o be_v declare_v before_o and_o all_o that_o i_o have_v here_o relate_v out_o of_o this_o holy_a father_n 5._o aug._n tom_n 6._o li._n cont_n epist_n quam_fw-la vocant_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la cap._n 5._o may_v be_v as_o well_o urge_v against_o any_o sectary_n whatsoever_o of_o our_o time_n as_o against_o manichaeus_n for_o whosoever_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o have_v err_v in_o condemn_v any_o one_o of_o their_o heresy_n by_o weaken_v and_o overthrow_v her_o authority_n weaken_v also_o and_o overthrow_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a bible_n neither_o do_v that_o which_o he_o allege_v out_o of_o waldensis_n make_v any_o way_n for_o he_o for_o as_o this_o learned_a man_n plain_o in_o that_o very_a place_n declare_v he_o understand_v s._n augustine_n as_o i_o have_v deliver_v these_o be_v his_o word_n 21._o waldensis_fw-la lib._n 2._o doctrinalis_fw-la fidei_fw-la artic_a 2._o ca._n 21._o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n no_o scripture_n can_v be_v read_v or_o bad_a for_o certain_a and_o this_o s._n augustine_n understand_v when_o he_o say_v i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n do_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n move_v i_o thereunto_o thus_o waldensis_n the_o point_n which_o field_n touch_v be_v in_o his_o discourse_n follow_v but_o it_o make_v nothing_o against_o we_o for_o he_o only_o say_v that_o which_o i_o have_v before_o deliver_v to_o wit_n that_o by_o the_o proposition_n of_o
such_o vehemency_n accuse_v he_o that_o preach_v other_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o be_v before_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n 9_o gal._n 1_o 9_o if_o any_o man_n say_v he_o evangelise_v to_o you_o beside_o that_o which_o you_o have_v receive_v be_v he_o anathema_n or_o curse_a to_o which_o sentence_n allude_v vincentius_n lirinensis_n in_o these_o word_n 14._o vincent_n lir._n c._n 14._o to_o preach_v unto_o christian_a catholic_n other_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o they_o have_v already_o receive_v no_o where_o be_v lawful_a and_o never_o shall_v be_v lawful_a and_o to_o accurse_v as_o heretic_n those_o which_o preach_v other_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o before_o have_v be_v accept_v it_o be_v never_o unlawful_a it_o be_v in_o no_o place_n unlawful_a and_o never_o will_v be_v unlawful_a hitherto_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n contrariwise_o for_o keep_v undefiled_a this_o rule_n or_o tradition_n the_o same_o apostle_n high_o commend_v the_o corinthian_n say_v 2._o 1._o corin._n 11_o 2._o i_o praise_v you_o brethren_n that_o in_o all_o thing_n you_o be_v mindful_a of_o i_o and_o as_o i_o have_v deliver_v unto_o you_o you_o keep_v my_o precept_n or_o according_a to_o the_o greek_a word_n my_o tradition_n and_o because_o the_o church_n and_o above_o all_o other_o the_o roman_n most_o careful_o keep_v these_o tradition_n 4._o iren._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o s._n irenaeus_n call_v it_o the_o rich_a treasure-house_n of_o apostolic_a tradition_n wherefore_o whosoever_o be_v desirous_a to_o discern_v a_o true_a christian_a from_o a_o faithless_a heretic_n must_v behold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o they_o both_o and_o pronounce_v he_o to_o be_v the_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ_n who_o by_o succession_n and_o tradition_n have_v receive_v his_o belief_n from_o he_o and_o his_o apostle_n for_o like_a as_o a_o nobleman_n or_o gentleman_n of_o antiquity_n be_v know_v by_o his_o pedigree_n so_o a_o true_a christian_a be_v know_v by_o the_o succession_n and_o descent_n of_o his_o prelate_n and_o faith_n from_o they_o that_o first_o receive_v it_o from_o our_o lord_n neither_o do_v this_o our_o doctrine_n any_o way_n diminish_v the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o this_o notwithstanding_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o almighty_a god_n most_o wise_o ordain_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n shall_v be_v write_v that_o he_o move_v the_o penner_n thereof_o thereunto_o and_o direct_v they_o by_o his_o divine_a inspiration_n and_o this_o both_o for_o the_o confirmation_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o faith_n &_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o also_o that_o the_o say_a tradition_n may_v with_o more_o ease_n come_v to_o every_o one_o knowledge_n and_o that_o every_o one_o by_o such_o monument_n may_v learn_v to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n of_o which_o he_o be_v to_o be_v instruct_v concern_v all_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n but_o of_o our_o estimation_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v more_o above_o 7._o chap._n 7._o section_n the_o second_o of_o unwritten_a tradition_n in_o particular_a this_o discourse_n be_v premise_v concern_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n i_o come_v now_o to_o discourse_n of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o say_a tradition_n which_o be_v concern_v matter_n of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o express_a mention_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v call_v unwritten_a tradition_n and_o first_o that_o both_o such_o tradition_n be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v not_o express_o contain_v in_o the_o write_v word_n of_o god_n i_o have_v already_o declare_v 1._o section_n 1._o because_o none_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o disciple_n ever_o intend_v to_o set_v down_o in_o any_o parcel_n of_o scripture_n the_o say_v whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o also_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o those_o word_n of_o s._n luke_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o which_o he_o tell_v we_o 3_o act_n 1_o verse_n 3_o that_o christ_n after_o his_o passion_n show_v himself_o alive_a in_o many_o argument_n for_o forty_o day_n appear_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o by_o this_o relation_n it_o seem_v evident_a that_o our_o saviour_n during_o the_o time_n between_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n diverse_a instruction_n which_o be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o particular_a in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o no_o apostle_n or_o evangelist_n relate_v in_o particular_a these_o discourse_n of_o christ_n and_o they_o be_v without_o all_o doubt_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n their_o administration_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o other_o such_o like_a affair_n belong_v to_o christian_a religion_n which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o apostle_n leave_v to_o their_o successor_n only_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o secret_a tradition_n this_o in_o plain_a term_n be_v avouch_v by_o rum_o by_o epiph._n haeres_fw-la 61._o apostolico_n rum_o s._n epiphanius_n who_o word_n be_v these_o we_o must_v use_v tradition_n for_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v certain_a thing_n in_o writing_n certain_a by_o tradition_n the_o same_o truth_n be_v affirm_v by_o 27._o by_o basil_n de_fw-fr spiri_fw-la sancto_fw-la cap._n 27._o s._n basil_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n yea_o this_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n himself_o who_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o not_o only_o commend_v most_o earnest_o to_o the_o church_n write_v tradition_n but_o also_o unwritten_a 15._o unwritten_a 2._o thess_n 2_o 15._o brethren_n say_v he_o stand_v and_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n out_o of_o which_o place_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o some_o tradition_n by_o the_o apostle_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o thessalonian_o by_o word_n and_o that_o here_o he_o speak_v of_o such_o tradition_n as_o we_o treat_v of_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n among_o the_o rest_n s_o john_n chrisostome_n gather_v out_o of_o they_o this_o conclusion_n hence_o it_o be_v manifest_a say_v he_o that_o they_o videlicet_fw-la the_o apostle_n deliver_v not_o all_o thing_n by_o epistle_n but_o many_o thing_n also_o unwritten_a and_o those_o thing_n likewise_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v thessa_n believe_v chrisost_o hom_n 4._o in_o 2._o thessa_n it_o be_v a_o tradition_n seek_v thou_o no_o further_o thus_o s._n chrisostome_n but_o that_o the_o father_n admit_v unwritten_a tradition_n it_o be_v grant_v by_o 670._o by_o whitak_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la scrip_n pag._n 678._o 668._o 681._o 683._o 685._o 690._o 695._o 696._o 670._o whitaker_n 689._o whitaker_n rain_n in_o his_o conclusion_n amnex_v to_o his_o conference_n 1._o conclu_fw-la pag._n 689._o rainolds_n 103_o rainolds_n cart._n in_o whitg_n defence_n p._n 103_o cartwrite_v 90_o cartwrite_v kemnis_n in_o exam_n part_n 1._o pa._n 87_o 89._o 90_o kemnisius_n 36._o kemnisius_n fulk_n against_o pur_fw-mi pag._n 362._o 303._o 397._o against_o marshal_n pag._n 170._o 178._o against_o brist_n motive_n pag._n 35._o 36._o fulke_n and_o other_o protestant_n wherefore_o i_o need_v not_o allege_v any_o more_o of_o their_o testimony_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n wherefore_o we_o have_v no_o precept_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o believe_v or_o observe_v those_o thing_n only_o which_o be_v express_o contain_v in_o the_o say_a volume_n neither_o do_v we_o find_v that_o ever_o the_o apostle_n or_o their_o follower_n commend_v and_o deliver_v to_o any_o church_n or_o people_n the_o say_v new_a testament_n as_o a_o book_n comprehend_v in_o express_a term_n the_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n nay_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o for_o diverse_a year_n before_o the_o say_a book_n be_v write_v the_o apostle_n deliver_v all_o by_o tradition_n and_o word_n of_o mouth_n further_o that_o the_o estimation_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n have_v ever_o be_v exceed_v great_a in_o the_o church_n it_o appear_v not_o only_o by_o this_o that_o diverse_a of_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o 1._o the_o section_n 1._o chapter_n next_o before_n by_o tradition_n have_v prove_v what_o scripture_n be_v canonical_a and_o plead_v the_o authority_n of_o they_o against_o diverse_a heresy_n but_o also_o by_o this_o that_o diverse_a heresy_n have_v be_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o they_o only_o condemn_v &_o overthrow_v in_o the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a as_o 18._o as_o sozom._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 16._o et_fw-la 18._o sozomenus_n report_v the_o father_n especial_o endeavour_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v decree_v but_o that_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v by_o tradition_n from_o their_o forefather_n s._n cyprian_n with_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n &_o
he_o upon_o his_o holy_a spouse_n our_o mother_n the_o church_n now_o what_o court_n in_o the_o world_n represent_v the_o whole_a church_n if_o not_o a_o general_a council_n in_o which_o her_o visible_a head_n either_o in_o person_n or_o by_o his_o legate_n with_o a_o great_a part_n of_o her_o chief_a pastor_n and_o prelate_n who_o represent_v not_o only_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o which_o they_o have_v charge_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v assemble_v what_o assembly_n be_v above_o this_o what_o decree_n be_v so_o firm_a and_o of_o such_o eminent_a authority_n as_o be_v the_o definition_n of_o such_o a_o council_n very_o see_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a and_o she_o do_v in_o no_o superior_a court_n pronounce_v her_o sentence_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o be_v the_o court_n in_o which_o all_o controversy_n touch_v matter_n of_o faith_n with_o warrant_n of_o infallible_a and_o divine_a truth_n be_v final_o decide_v and_o end_v furthermore_o if_o christ_n vicar_n on_o earth_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o general_a precept_n of_o manner_n when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n when_o if_o not_o in_o a_o general_a council_n do_v he_o enjoy_v this_o privilege_n if_o helgate_n can_v prevail_v against_o the_o church_n when_o if_o not_o in_o a_o general_a council_n shall_v we_o think_v she_o so_o invincible_a if_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v as_o christ_n when_o if_o not_o in_o a_o general_a council_n shall_v we_o hearken_v unto_o they_o 2._o math._n 18._o verse_n 20._o see_v before_o chap._n 6._o section_n 2._o and_o yield_v they_o such_o obedience_n if_o when_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o according_a to_o his_o own_o promise_n how_o shall_v we_o think_v he_o absent_a from_o a_o general_a council_n if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v teach_v the_o church_n all_o truth_n when_o if_o not_o in_o a_o general_a council_n do_v he_o so_o instruct_v and_o direct_v she_o final_o if_o the_o bishop_n &_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o general_a council_n may_v err_v themselves_o how_o can_v they_o as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n they_o shall_v according_o to_o the_o ordination_n of_o christ_n etc._n ephes_n 4._o vers_fw-la 11._o etc._n etc._n keep_v all_o the_o whole_a church_n from_o waver_v and_o error_n in_o faith_n hence_o the_o decision_n of_o a_o general_a council_n have_v ever_o have_v three_o principal_a prerogative_n give_v it_o by_o all_o allow_a monument_n of_o antiquity_n which_o may_v also_o manifest_o be_v deduce_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n itself_o first_o that_o it_o be_v as_o be_v aforesaid_a the_o supreme_a and_o last_o judicial_a sentence_n of_o the_o church_n from_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o appeal_n and_o which_o by_o no_o mean_n can_v be_v make_v void_a or_o recall_v this_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o epictetum_n of_o athan_n epist_n ad_fw-la epictetum_n s._n athanasius_n the_o great_a scholar_n and_o the_o most_o principal_a champion_n of_o his_o age_n against_o the_o arian_n who_o in_o a_o epistle_n recite_v also_o by_o damasunt_fw-la by_o epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 77._o see_v also_o hieron_n epist_n 57_o ad_fw-la damasunt_fw-la s._n epiphanius_n wonder_v how_o certain_a dare_v move_v any_o question_n concern_v thing_n define_v in_o the_o nicene_n council_n much_o more_o will_v he_o have_v wonder_v if_o in_o his_o day_n any_o man_n have_v write_v as_o field_n now_o have_v do_v that_o 5._o that_o field_n book_n 4._o c._n 12._o and_o 5._o after_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o council_n have_v pass_v a_o man_n may_v still_o doubt_v and_o refuse_v to_o believe_v without_o heretical_a pertinacy_n yea_o he_o avouch_v that_o counsel_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o great_a consequence_n but_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n add_v this_o reason_n why_o he_o thus_o marvel_v to_o wit_n because_o the_o decree_n of_o such_o counsel_n can_v be_v alter_v without_o error_n s._n augustine_n say_v 162._o say_v aug._n epist_n 162._o a_o general_a council_n be_v the_o last_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n martianun_n church_n leo_fw-la episto_fw-la 50._o ad_fw-la martianun_n s._n leo_n reque_v of_o martianus_n the_o emperor_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v define_v in_o general_a counsel_n may_v not_o be_v reverse_a or_o recall_v which_o also_o the_o say_a catho_fw-la say_a l._n nemo_n cap._n the_o sum_n trinit_fw-la et_fw-la fide_fw-la catho_fw-la martianus_n ratefied_a by_o his_o imperial_a constitution_n the_o same_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o general_a counsel_n of_o finen_n of_o concilium_fw-la ephesinun_n circa_fw-la finen_n ephesus_n and_o ult._n and_o concilium_fw-la chalcedom_n act_n 5._o can_n ult._n chalcedon_n second_o those_o be_v censure_v by_o the_o father_n and_o counsel_n to_o be_v heretic_n who_o disobey_v the_o decree_n of_o such_o counsel_n and_o first_o all_o general_a counsel_n denounce_v anathema_n to_o they_o and_o accurse_v those_o that_o shall_v contradict_v their_o definition_n which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v without_o error_n upon_o a_o mere_a persuasion_n without_o infallible_a assurance_n of_o divine_a truth_n in_o their_o say_a definition_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a do_v so_o it_o be_v record_v by_o affricae_n by_o athanas_n epistol_n ad_fw-la episcopos_fw-la affricae_n s._n athanasius_n and_o the_o act_n of_o other_o such_o counsel_n evident_o prove_v the_o same_o proceed_n in_o they_o the_o judgement_n of_o anatho_n of_o leo_fw-la epi._n 78._o ad_fw-la leonem_fw-la imp._n see_v be_v also_o in_o epist_n 77._o add_v anatho_n s._n leo_n be_v that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v number_v among_o catholic_n that_o resist_v the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a and_o chalcedon_n 87._o chalcedon_n basil_n epist_n 87._o s._n basil_n will_v catholic_n to_o propound_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a to_o those_o that_o be_v suspect_v of_o heresy_n because_o by_o this_o it_o will_v have_v appear_v whether_o they_o be_v heretic_n or_o catholic_n 18._o catholic_n august_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la cap._n 18._o s._n augustine_n excuse_v s._n cyprian_n from_o heresy_n only_o for_o this_o reason_n that_o his_o opinion_n touch_v the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n be_v not_o condemn_v by_o any_o general_a council_n 24._o council_n greg._n lib._n 1._o epist_n 24._o s._n gregory_n denounce_v anathema_n to_o those_o that_o receive_v not_o the_o five_o general_a councle_n which_o only_o be_v celebrate_v before_o his_o day_n unto_o this_o i_o add_v that_o all_o christian_a catholic_a emperor_n by_o their_o constitution_n adjudge_v such_o as_o heretic_n and_o make_v they_o subject_a to_o the_o punishment_n of_o such_o miscreant_n that_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o definition_n of_o general_a counsel_n he_o be_v wicked_a and_o sacralegeous_a say_v chalced._n say_v martian_a et_fw-la valem_fw-la in_o edicto_fw-la ad_fw-la palladium_n praefectum_fw-la praetorio_fw-la edicto_fw-la quod_fw-la extat_fw-la act_n 3._o sinodi_fw-la chalced._n martianus_n and_o valentinianus_n who_o after_o the_o sentence_n of_o so_o many_o bishop_n do_v say_v any_o thing_n according_a to_o his_o own_o opinion_n yea_o at_o all_o time_n such_o as_o be_v condemn_v by_o such_o counsel_n as_o heretic_n have_v be_v so_o esteem_v by_o all_o sort_n although_o not_o so_o censure_v before_o and_o not_o only_o in_o that_o age_n in_o which_o they_o be_v so_o condemn_v but_o in_o all_o age_n follow_v and_o both_o these_o assertion_n may_v be_v prove_v by_o that_o sentence_n of_o our_o lord_n 7._o lord_n math._n 10_o 7._o he_o that_o shall_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o the_o heathen_a and_o the_o publican_n for_o he_o that_o disobey_v the_o church_n assemble_v in_o this_o supreme_a court_n be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v think_v a_o christian_a or_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o any_o other_o trial_n but_o to_o be_v esteem_v a_o heretic_n and_o a_o infidel_n three_o by_o the_o same_o counsel_n and_o father_n the_o decree_n of_o general_a counsel_n be_v say_v to_o be_v divine_a and_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v of_o infallible_a truth_n and_o not_o subject_a to_o error_n the_o father_n assemble_v in_o the_o most_o ancient_a counsel_n avouch_v the_o say_v counsel_n to_o be_v gather_v together_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n constantini_n ghost_n epist_n ad_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la apud_fw-la eusebium_n li._n 3._o de_fw-la vita_fw-la constantini_n constantine_n the_o great_a call_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a heavenly_a precept_n affricae_n precept_n athan_n epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la episcopos_fw-la affricae_n s._n athanasius_n write_v that_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a remain_v for_o ever_o athanas_n ever_o nazian_n orat_fw-la in_o athanas_n s._n gregory_n nazianzene_n tell_v
not_o only_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n 1._o genevain_n obseruat_fw-la upon_o harmony_n of_o confess_v sect_n 1._o paul_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n and_o s._n jude_n the_o second_o of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o second_o and_o three_o of_o s._n john_n together_o with_o the_o apocalypse_n who_o authority_n as_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o doctor_n of_o geneva_n by_o brentius_n and_o all_o the_o lutheran_n yea_o as_o it_o be_v record_v by_o diverse_a father_n as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o nay_o further_o as_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o thomas_n rogers_n a_o english_a protestant_n conferen_n thomas_n rogers_n upon_o the_o 6._o artic._n propos_fw-fr 4._o pa._n 31._o see_v also_o whitaker_n before_o cite_v and_o the_o disputat_fw-la have_v in_o the_o tower_n with_o f._n campian_n in_o the_o 4._o day_n conferen_n in_o his_o discourse_n upon_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n of_o the_o year_n 1562._o and_o before_o he_o by_o whitaker_n and_o other_o have_v be_v sometime_o doubtful_a but_o also_o certain_a other_o parcel_n of_o scripture_n by_o they_o likewise_o receive_v as_o i_o can_v declare_v out_o of_o diverse_a approve_a author_n the_o doctor_n of_o geneva_n to_o prove_v the_o book_n name_v to_o be_v canonical_a fly_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o will_v have_v they_o admit_v as_o such_o because_o they_o be_v receive_v and_o acknowledge_v as_o canonical_a by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n although_o some_o doubt_n be_v make_v of_o they_o sometime_o by_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n but_o this_o according_a to_o their_o own_o ground_n be_v to_o give_v they_o no_o divine_a authority_n as_o i_o have_v already_o note_v and_o before_o i_o end_v this_o section_n i_o can_v but_o add_v that_o i_o will_v wish_v m._n rogers_n who_o i_o even_o now_o name_v to_o look_v a_o little_a better_o into_o his_o book_n if_o hereafter_o he_o chance_v to_o publish_v any_o with_o such_o approbation_n as_o he_o do_v pretend_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o for_o i_o can_v see_v but_o write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o sixth_o article_n he_o overthrow_v the_o same_o by_o grant_v that_o which_o i_o have_v allege_v he_o confess_v to_o make_v this_o a_o little_a see_v unto_o he_o thus_o i_o argue_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o do_v understand_v those_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n of_o who_o authority_n be_v never_o doubt_v in_o the_o church_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o article_n 26._o page_n 26._o but_o of_o some_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o have_v be_v doubt_n in_o the_o church_n as_o appear_v by_o those_o m._n roger_n word_n some_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n accept_v not_o all_o the_o book_n 4._o pag._n 31._o propos_fw-fr 4._o contain_v within_o the_o volume_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o canonical_a therefore_o all_o the_o book_n contain_v in_o the_o volume_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o understand_v in_o the_o name_n of_o holy_a scripture_n this_o conclusion_n necessary_o follow_v of_o the_o premise_n grant_v as_o every_o man_n see_v and_o yet_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o last_o word_n of_o the_o same_o article_n 4._o page_n 26._o pag._n 31._o propos_fw-fr 4._o in_o which_o they_o profess_v themselves_o to_o receive_v and_o account_v as_o canonical_a all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o rogers_n himself_o affirm_v section_n the_o third_z the_o same_o be_v prove_v because_o every_o christian_a be_v bind_v to_o admit_v and_o believe_v certain_a proposition_n neither_o express_o contain_v nor_o according_a to_o some_o man_n judgement_n so_o evident_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n second_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o conclusion_n out_o of_o it_o manifest_o deduce_v by_o every_o private_a man_n set_v a_o side_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o above_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n or_o rule_v of_o christian_a belief_n and_o religion_n because_o every_o true_a christian_a be_v bind_v to_o admit_v and_o believe_v certain_a proposition_n concern_v the_o mystery_n and_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o express_o contain_v in_o the_o letter_n nor_o as_o some_o of_o they_o think_v so_o evident_o deduce_v out_o of_o the_o same_o especial_o if_o we_o allow_v of_o our_o adversary_n commentary_n the_o first_o be_v easy_o prove_v for_o where_o do_v we_o find_v in_o the_o whole_a bible_n the_o word_n trinity_n person_n and_o consubstantial_a and_o yet_o most_o of_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o every_o christian_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o admit_v in_o express_a term_n these_o proposition_n follow_v there_o be_v a_o trinity_n there_o be_v three_o person_n in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v consubstantial_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o such_o like_a yea_o beza_n himself_o confess_v that_o without_o the_o use_n of_o these_o word_n 9_o beza_n lib._n de_fw-la hereticis_fw-la a_o civili_fw-la magistratu_fw-la puniendis_fw-la pag._n 51._o also_o in_o ep._n theol._n 81._o pag._n 334._o 335._o see_v part_n 1._o chap._n 9_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o mystery_n can_v be_v explicate_v nor_o the_o denier_n of_o they_o confute_v and_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o whosoever_o reject_v these_o word_n do_v open_v the_o gap_n to_o judaisme_n arianisme_n and_o turkism_n but_o some_o of_o they_o fly_v to_o deduction_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o answer_v that_o although_o the_o word_n be_v not_o express_o find_v in_o the_o bible_n yet_o that_o the_o mystery_n themselves_o be_v express_o in_o it_o contain_v and_o deliver_v and_o conseqnent_o that_o the_o word_n apt_o signify_v the_o say_a mystery_n and_o deduce_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n itself_o may_v very_o well_o and_o convenient_o be_v use_v i_o reply_v that_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o every_o private_a man_n deduction_n be_v subject_a to_o error_n except_o it_o be_v by_o a_o infallible_a argument_n and_o every_o proposition_n be_v most_o evident_o true_a in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o it_o be_v allege_v wherefore_o such_o deduction_n as_o our_o adversary_n common_o use_v make_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n second_o the_o collection_n themselves_o of_o these_o high_a mystery_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o obscurity_n and_o diversity_n of_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o seldom_o obscure_a and_o therefore_o those_o collection_n which_o to_o some_o seem_v evident_a by_o other_o be_v judge_v false_a hence_o the_o collection_n of_o those_o very_a mystery_n which_o i_o have_v name_v by_o diverse_a of_o our_o adversary_n be_v deny_v as_o by_o valentinus_n gentilis_fw-la and_o his_o follower_n gentil_n follower_n valent._n gentilis_fw-la in_o confess_v apud_fw-la caluin_n pag._n 930._o &_o in_o prothe_n pastor_n bremensis_n in_o hist._n valent_n gentil_n who_o affirm_v the_o three_o person_n to_o have_v three_o distinct_a nature_n or_o essence_n and_o the_o father_n to_o have_v be_v before_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n before_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o make_v also_o the_o one_o inferior_a to_o the_o other_o etc._n etc._n the_o same_o collection_n be_v likewise_o deny_v by_o seruetus_fw-la and_o his_o disciple_n trinitatis_fw-la disciple_n seruetus_fw-la li._n de_fw-fr erroribus_fw-la trinitatis_fw-la who_o acknowledge_v no_o distinction_n of_o person_n in_o god_n make_v christ_n a_o pure_a man_n and_o deny_v he_o to_o have_v be_v before_o his_o incarnation_n final_o by_o georgius_n blandrata_n paulus_n alciatus_fw-la and_o other_o scholar_n of_o these_o man_n who_o 42._o who_o greg._n paul_n apud_fw-la hosium_n in_fw-la judicio_fw-la &_o censura_fw-la de_fw-la adoranda_fw-la trinitate_fw-la see_v hooker_n book_n 5._o of_o eccles_n policy_n §._o 42._o affirm_v that_o luther_n begin_v to_o pull_v down_o the_o roof_n they_o raise_v the_o foundation_n of_o popery_n who_o condemn_v all_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n and_o father_n reverence_v by_o all_o christian_n of_o 81._o of_o beza_n epist_n theolog._n 81._o tritheisme_n or_o make_v of_o three_o god_n term_v s._n athanasius_n sathanasius_n avouch_v the_o bless_a trinity_n which_o most_o blasphemous_o they_o call_v cerberus_n and_o the_o tripartited_a god_n to_o be_v a_o invention_n of_o he_o and_o call_v the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n blind_a sophist_n minister_n of_o the_o beast_n slave_n of_o antechrist_n bewitch_v with_o his_o illusion_n etc._n etc._n yea_o some_o of_o these_o new_a sectary_n go_v so_o far_o in_o this_o matter_n that_o they_o forsake_v christ_n altogether_o and_o become_v turk_n among_o who_o be_v seruetianis_fw-la be_v simlerus_n in_o praefat_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr aeterno_fw-la dei_fw-la filio_fw-la gregor_n paulus_n lib._n de_fw-la trinitat_fw-la volanus_fw-la in_o
against_o all_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v foolishness_n to_o man_n reason_n 1_o cor._n 1._o and_o they_o will_v never_o have_v utter_v this_o have_v they_o have_v any_o regard_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o be_v not_o their_o heart_n full_a of_o infidelity_n so_o as_o their_o mouth_n speak_v out_o of_o the_o abundance_n of_o their_o hart_n 391._o fol._n 391._o final_o he_o conclude_v thus_o if_o these_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o reason_n which_o shall_v certify_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n and_o prove_v our_o faith_n and_o confirm_v our_o conscience_n he_o mean_v such_o ground_n and_o reason_n as_o be_v bring_v from_o natural_a discourse_n and_o philosophy_n then_o true_o we_o be_v in_o evil_a case_n if_o a_o man_n have_v deliver_v i_o such_o book_n without_o title_n or_o name_n as_o be_v write_v by_o the_o sacramentary_n and_o i_o know_v not_o otherwise_o such_o learned_a and_o excellent_a man_n to_o have_v be_v the_o author_n of_o they_o i_o shall_v sure_o have_v think_v that_o some_o jest_n comediant_a or_o turkish_a vagabond_n have_v make_v they_o in_o despite_n and_o derision_n of_o christian_n very_o i_o see_v not_o how_o they_o can_v be_v excuse_v with_o any_o probable_a pretence_n as_o many_o other_o heretic_n have_v have_v for_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o play_v with_o god_n word_n of_o wilfulness_n and_o malice_n and_o i_o think_v it_o can_v be_v that_o such_o cold_a toy_n and_o babble_n shall_v indeed_o move_v a_o turk_n or_o jew_n much_o less_o a_o christian_n etc._n etc._n praefat_fw-la centur._n 4._o in_o praefat_fw-la this_o and_o much_o more_o have_v luther_n the_o magdeburgian_o likewise_o tell_v we_o that_o some_o and_o they_o mean_v the_o sacramentary_n flat_o by_o philosophical_a reason_n make_v void_a and_o frustrate_v the_o testament_n of_o our_o lord_n so_o as_o they_o take_v away_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n touch_v his_o presence_n and_o communication_n which_o presence_n and_o communication_n be_v according_a to_o the_o most_o clear_a most_o evident_a most_o true_a and_o most_o puissant_a word_n of_o christ_n and_o they_o deceive_v man_n with_o marvellous_a equivocation_n of_o speech_n hitherto_o the_o centurie_n writer_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n touch_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o sacramentary_a doctrine_n be_v westphalus_n for_o the_o sacramentary_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n urge_v this_o argument_n 1558._o westphalus_n in_o apolog._n contra_fw-la caluin_n c._n 19_o pag._n 194._o anno_fw-la 1558._o the_o body_n of_o man_n be_v circumscribe_v in_o a_o place_n therefore_o at_o one_o time_n it_o can_v be_v but_o in_o in_o one_o place_n therefore_o not_o in_o all_o place_n where_o the_o supper_n be_v minister_v unto_o which_o westphalus_n repli_v thus_o be_v not_o say_v he_o this_o geometrical_a argument_n featched_a from_o euclides_n demonstration_n the_o pillar_n and_o upholder_n of_o all_o these_o sacramentary_n do_v not_o this_o uphold_v the_o build_n of_o their_o sillogisme_n which_o corrupt_v very_o many_o place_n of_o scripture_n most_o true_o be_v verify_v of_o the_o sacramentary_n that_o memorable_a say_n take_v from_o heretic_n that_o wherein_o they_o agree_v with_o philosopher_n and_o they_o can_v stand_v take_v from_o the_o sacramentary_n that_o which_o they_o draw_v from_o philosophy_n and_o how_o small_a a_o quantity_n will_v remain_v of_o the_o great_a volume_n of_o all_o the_o sacramentary_n how_o long_o will_v it_o be_v before_o the_o doctrine_n of_o berengarius_fw-la fall_n to_o the_o ground_n well_o and_o true_o write_v tertullian_n that_o philosopher_n be_v the_o patriarch_n of_o heretic_n for_o philosophy_n bring_v forth_o all_o heresy_n and_o she_o beget_v the_o error_n of_o zwinglius_fw-la thus_o much_o out_o of_o the_o lutheran_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n against_o the_o sacramentary_n and_o their_o work_n general_o be_v full_a of_o such_o discourse_n hence_o it_o appear_v that_o according_a to_o their_o judgement_n the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v build_v upon_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o denial_n of_o it_o upon_o geometrical_a and_o philosophical_a reason_n but_o find_v we_o no_o proof_n for_o our_o catholic_a exposition_n of_o the_o afore_o say_v word_n in_o the_o sacramentary_n themselves_o true_o first_o caluin_n avouch_v that_o unless_o a_o man_n will_v call_v god_n a_o deceiver_n 10._o caluin_n institut_fw-la book_n 4._o cha_n 17._o §._o 10._o he_o can_v never_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o say_v that_o he_o set_v before_o we_o a_o empty_a sign_n and_o this_o he_o be_v force_v to_o affirm_v through_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n second_o it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o diverse_a learned_a man_n of_o this_o sect_n yea_o of_o some_o esteem_v by_o they_o martyr_n that_o our_o doctrine_n touch_v this_o point_n may_v be_v hold_v without_o any_o peril_n of_o damnation_n or_o separation_n from_o the_o one_o true_a spiritual_a body_n of_o christ_n his_o holy_a church_n of_o which_o opinion_n among_o other_o be_v william_n tindal_n who_o whetenhal_o honour_v with_o this_o title_n 134._o title_n whetenhal_o in_o his_o discourse_n of_o the_o abuse_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 134._o william_n tindal_n that_o bless_a martyr_n of_o god_n the_o first_o man_n that_o ever_o bring_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n into_o english_a print_n and_o therefore_o say_v this_o puritan_n he_o may_v worthy_o be_v call_v our_o english_a evangelist_n yea_o our_o book_n of_o martyr_n 1._o martyr_n fox_n p._n 883._o edit_n 1._o call_v he_o the_o true_a apostle_n of_o our_o latter_a day_n and_o that_o much_o more_o just_o then_o popish_a augustine_n the_o first_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v so_o term_v by_o diverse_a thus_o whetenhal_o this_o tindal_n i_o say_v as_o also_o frith_n barnes_n and_o cranmer_n of_o who_o the_o say_v whetenhal_o 157._o whetenhal_o whetenhal_a ibid._n p._n 157._o in_o a_o other_o place_n as_o be_v relate_v by_o tind_n by_o fox_n in_o tind_n fox_n himself_o hold_v it_o 1563._o it_o frith_n barnes_n and_o cranmer_n especial_o pag._n 500_o edit_n anno_o 1563._o a_o thing_n indifferent_a to_o believe_v or_o not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v 11._o be_v covel_n in_o his_o def_n of_o hooker_n art_n 11._o m._n covel_n a_o man_n of_o good_a account_n among_o the_o english_a protestant_n 11._o protestant_n dove_n persuasion_n p._n 11._o dove_n also_o write_v that_o in_o fundamental_a point_n of_o doctrine_n the_o great_a papist_n in_o the_o world_n agree_v with_o they_o and_o see_v that_o we_o agree_v not_o with_o they_o in_o this_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o in_o his_o judgement_n this_o be_v no_o fundamental_a point_n it_o may_v likewise_o be_v well_o gather_v out_o of_o field_n assertion_n 4._o assertion_n see_v field_n book_n 3._o chap._n 3._o and_o 4._o in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o church_n that_o his_o sentence_n be_v conformable_a but_o what_o need_v i_o rehearse_v particular_a author_n for_o this_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v etc._n be_v see_v the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n par_fw-fr 3._o pag._n 100_o sutcliffe_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o ward-word_n pag._n 21._o fulke_o upon_o the_o rheims_n testam_fw-la ephes_n 4._o vers_fw-la 4._o etc._n etc._n grant_v by_o all_o the_o sacramentary_n who_o make_v one_o church_n of_o themselves_o and_o the_o lutheran_n and_o of_o this_o the_o reason_n be_v apparent_a because_o although_o the_o lutheran_n differ_v from_o we_o in_o the_o manner_n yet_o with_o we_o they_o confess_v christ_n to_o be_v real_o and_o corporal_o present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n unto_o which_o if_o we_o add_v that_o our_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o manner_n itself_o how_o this_o be_v do_v in_o the_o sacramentary_n judgement_n be_v more_o tolerable_a than_o luther_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n assign_v why_o we_o shall_v receive_v a_o hard_a censure_n for_o our_o belief_n than_o they_o for_o they_o and_o do_v not_o caluin_n himself_o aver_v this_o to_o be_v so_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o almost_o all_o the_o lutheran_n to_o defend_v this_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n affirm_v his_o humane_a nature_n to_o be_v real_o present_a wheresoever_o be_v his_o deity_n confession_n caluin_n institut_fw-la book_n 4._o chap._n 17._o §_o 30_o see_v also_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n which_o caluin_n call_v the_o monstrous_a be_v of_o christ_n every_o where_o and_o say_v the_o papist_n doctrine_n be_v more_o tolerable_a or_o at_o the_o least_o more_o shamefast_a than_o this_o nay_o all_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o sacramentary_n in_o foreign_a country_n be_v more_o vehement_a in_o oppugn_v this_o than_o we_o wherefore_o if_o the_o lutheran_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacramentary_n this_o notwithstanding_o be_v neither_o exclude_v from_o heaven_n nor_o the_o church_n a_o man_n
affirm_v it_o to_o be_v only_o a_o argument_n of_o a_o fable_n or_o tale_n whereby_o to_o set_v forth_o a_o example_n of_o patience_n he_o affirm_v that_o the_o book_n of_o test_n of_o luth._o in_o convival_n ser_fw-mi tit_n de_fw-fr libris_fw-la novi_fw-la &_o veter_fw-la test_n rabenstocke_n l._n 2._o colloquior_n latin_n luther_n cap._n de_fw-la veter_fw-la test_n ecclesiastes_n have_v never_o a_o perfect_a sentence_n that_o the_o author_n of_o it_o have_v neither_o boot_n nor_o spur_n but_o rid_v upon_o a_o long_a stick_n or_o in_o beg_v shoe_n as_o he_o do_v when_o he_o be_v a_o friar_n he_o will_v have_v cantica_fw-la have_v luth._o in_o exordio_fw-la suarum_fw-la annotat._n in_fw-la cantica_fw-la cantica_fw-la canticorum_fw-la which_o some_o 1595_o some_o bible_n 1595_o english_a sectary_n term_n the_o ballet_n of_o ballet_n of_o solomon_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o familiar_a speech_n or_o communication_n between_o solomon_n and_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o the_o jew_n josuae_fw-la jew_n castalio_n in_o translat_a latin_n suorum_fw-la bibliorum_fw-la see_v beza_n praefat_fw-la in_o josuae_fw-la castalio_n go_v further_a and_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o communication_n between_o solomon_n and_o a_o certain_a friend_n or_o mistress_n he_o have_v call_v sulamitha_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o eiusdem_fw-la the_o luther_n in_o 1._o edit_fw-la novi_fw-la test_n germ._n praefat_fw-la in_o epistol_n ad_fw-la hebr._n &_o in_o posterior_n edit_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la hebrew_n if_o we_o believe_v luther_n be_v write_v by_o none_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o contain_v thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n the_o like_a be_v affirm_v by_o the_o 4._o the_o centur._n 1._o lib._n 2._o cap._n 4._o century_n writer_n the_o same_o luther_n call_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n true_o a_o jacob_n a_o luth._o in_o praefat_fw-la in_o nowm_fw-la test_n germ._n edit_n 1._o &_o in_o jenens_fw-la edit_fw-la novi_fw-la test_n praefat_fw-la in_o jacob_n strawen_v epistle_n in_o comparison_n of_o those_o of_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o it_o be_v unctione_n be_v in_o captivit_n babylon_n cap._n de_fw-fr extrema_fw-la unctione_n probable_o aver_v to_o be_v none_o of_o he_o nor_o worthy_a of_o a_o apostolic_a spirit_n test_n spirit_n ad_fw-la cap._n 22._o genes_n in_o colloquijs_fw-la convival_n lat_fw-la tom_fw-mi 2._o de_fw-fr lib._n novi_fw-la test_n reprehend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o as_o false_a and_o contrary_a to_o that_o of_o genesis_n and_o of_o s._n paul_n the_o apostle_n say_v the_o author_n do_v delirare_fw-la that_o be_v dote_v etc._n etc._n it_o be_v likewise_o judge_v not_o canonical_a by_o jacob_n by_o muscul_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la comunibus_fw-la c._n de_fw-fr justific_a brent_n in_o apol._n illiric_a praef_n in_o jacob_n musculus_fw-la brentius_n illiricus_fw-la kemnitius_n and_o other_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o s._n peter_n say_v scripture_n say_v luth._o in_o suis_fw-fr germ._n biblijs_fw-la brentius_n in_o apolog._n ca._n the_o scripture_n luther_n be_v none_o of_o he_o but_o be_v of_o some_o uncertain_a author_n who_o be_v desirous_a to_o give_v credit_n to_o his_o work_n by_o the_o glory_n of_o a_o other_o man_n name_n brentius_n plain_o reject_v it_o as_o apocryphal_a the_o like_a be_v say_v by_o these_o and_o other_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o apolog._n of_o luther_n praef_n in_o epist_n jacob_n &_o lib._n cont_n amb._n catharinum_fw-la magdeburg_n cent._n 1._o lib._n 2._o ca._n 4._o brent_n in_o apolog._n s._n jude._n final_o luther_n censure_v the_o apol._n the_o luther_n praefat_fw-la in_o apocal._n prioris_fw-la edit_fw-la &_o lib._n de_fw-fr abroganda_fw-la missa_fw-la privata_fw-la brent_n in_o apol._n apocalypse_n of_o s._n john_n to_o be_v neither_o apostolic_a nor_o prophetical_a but_o i_o think_v it_o be_v say_v he_o like_o the_o four_o of_o esdras_n a_o book_n reject_v by_o we_o all_o neither_o can_v i_o any_o way_n find_v that_o it_o be_v make_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n let_v every_o man_n think_v of_o it_o as_o he_o please_v my_o spirit_n can_v accommodate_v itself_o to_o it_o and_o this_o cause_n be_v sufficient_a to_o i_o not_o great_o to_o esteem_v it_o that_o in_o it_o christ_n be_v neither_o teach_v nor_o know_v thus_o luther_n brentius_n have_v recite_v it_o among_o other_o book_n by_o he_o censure_v apocryphal_a conclude_v that_o some_o of_o the_o book_n reject_v be_v call_v dream_n other_o fable_n and_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o these_o protestant_n concern_v these_o book_n notwithstanding_o our_o jacobi_fw-la our_o see_v the_o bible_n of_o the_o year_n 1595._o authorize_v to_o be_v read_v in_o church_n article_n of_o the_o year_n 1562._o 1604._o articul_fw-la 6._o caluin_n in_o his_o institut_fw-la &_o in_o argum_fw-la epist_n jacobi_fw-la church_n of_o england_n with_o caluin_n &_o diverse_a other_o of_o their_o brother_n receive_v all_o these_o book_n as_o canonical_a and_o see_v that_o both_o these_o opinion_n can_v have_v a_o infallible_a ground_n and_o one_o according_a to_o their_o own_o proceed_n have_v no_o great_a reason_n for_o itself_o then_o the_o other_o i_o infer_v that_o they_o both_o have_v no_o other_o rule_n whereby_o to_o receive_v and_o reject_v book_n of_o scripture_n but_o their_o own_o judgement_n and_o fancy_n from_o which_o principal_o this_o difference_n among_o they_o arise_v it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o some_o sacramentary_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n reason_n rest_n whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o campian_n 1._o reason_n whitaker_n and_o 1604._o and_o roger_n pag._n 30._o upon_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o year_n 1562._o 1604._o rogers_n deny_v luther_n and_o the_o lutheran_n to_o reject_v the_o book_n mention_v i_o confess_v it_o but_o in_o very_a truth_n whosoever_o read_v the_o author_n and_o place_n allege_v will_v find_v that_o i_o do_v they_o no_o wrong_n and_o this_o he_o may_v partly_o gather_v out_o of_o rogers_n himself_o who_o although_o he_o 30._o he_o pag._n 30._o affirm_v all_o reform_a church_n to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n concern_v the_o canonical_a book_n yet_o in_o the_o next_o leaf_n 32._o leaf_n pag._n 32._o allege_v two_o principal_a lutheran_n wigandus_n and_o heshusius_fw-la and_o accuse_v they_o both_o of_o error_n the_o one_o for_o refuse_v the_o first_o and_o second_o epistle_n of_o s._n johns_n with_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n jude_n the_o other_o for_o reject_v the_o book_n of_o s._n johns_n revelation_n or_o the_o apocalypse_n i_o add_v also_o that_o 6._o that_o whitaker_n de_fw-fr sacris_fw-la script_n controver_n 1._o quaest_n 1._o c._n 6._o whitaker_n himself_o discourse_v of_o this_o matter_n in_o a_o other_o place_n have_v set_v down_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n add_v these_o word_n if_o luther_n or_o some_o that_o have_v follow_v luther_n have_v teach_v or_o write_v otherwise_o let_v they_o answer_v for_o themselves_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o we_o who_o in_o this_o matter_n neither_o follow_v luther_n nor_o defend_v he_o but_o be_v lead_v by_o a_o better_a reason_n thus_o whitaker_n but_o caluin_n direct_o tell_v we_o jacobi_fw-la we_o caluin_n in_o argumento_fw-la epistol_n jacobi_fw-la that_o in_o his_o time_n there_o be_v some_o that_o judge_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n not_o canonical_a oecolampadius_n testify_v the_o same_o touch_v the_o apocalypse_n and_o affirm_v himself_o to_o danielis_fw-la to_o oecolampadius_n lib._n 2._o ad_fw-la cap._n 12._o danielis_fw-la wonder_v that_o some_o with_o rash_a judgement_n reject_v s._n john_n in_o this_o book_n as_o a_o dreamer_n a_o mad_a or_o brainsick_a man_n and_o a_o writer_n improfitable_a to_o the_o church_n that_o luther_n in_o particular_a with_o a_o hard_a censure_n bereave_v this_o book_n of_o all_o authority_n it_o be_v record_v by_o 1._o by_o bullinger_n in_o apocalip_n cap._n 1._o ser_n 1._o bullinger_n yea_o wherefore_o yea_o field_n book_n 4._o chap._n 24._o §._o wherefore_o field_n condemn_v the_o inconsiderate_a rashness_n of_o such_o as_o in_o our_o time_n make_v question_n of_o any_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n etc._n etc._n name_v luther_n in_o the_o margin_n it_o may_v perhaps_o be_v say_v by_o some_o man_n that_o all_o the_o sacramentary_n accord_v together_o concern_v the_o book_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o that_o they_o have_v some_o certain_a and_o divine_a rule_n whereby_o to_o discern_v such_o book_n from_o other_o but_o this_o be_v easy_o refell_v because_o there_o be_v no_o such_o consent_n or_o agreement_n among_o they_o for_o do_v not_o wolfangus_n musculus_fw-la a_o zwinglian_n of_o great_a fame_n with_o luther_n and_o the_o lutheran_n reject_v the_o epistle_n of_o james_n out_o of_o the_o canon_n very_o either_o this_o must_v be_v grant_v or_o else_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o he_o affirm_v one_o scripture_n to_o contradict_v a_o other_o and_o false_a doctrine_n to_o be_v
that_o pronounce_v now_o this_o now_o that_o of_o the_o same_o thing_n he_o be_v never_o constant_a to_o himself_o but_o think_v that_o such_o levity_n and_o inconstancy_n may_v be_v use_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o shameless_a jester_n common_o use_v play_v at_o dice._n again_o luther_n say_v he_o do_v not_o only_o bring_v his_o former_a doctrine_n in_o suspicion_n but_o also_o give_v the_o papist_n a_o most_o fit_a occasion_n to_o condemn_v he_o by_o send_v in_o this_o present_a controversy_n his_o reader_n only_o to_o those_o book_n which_o he_o write_v within_o four_o or_o five_o year_n before_o for_o who_o have_v hear_v or_o read_v these_o thing_n will_v not_o say_v that_o if_o so_o be_v that_o we_o expect_v other_o five_o year_n without_o all_o doubt_n they_o be_v past_a he_o will_v call_v into_o doubt_n those_o book_n which_o he_o write_v in_o these_o last_o five_o year_n thus_o far_a zwinglius_fw-la of_o luther_n inconstancy_n erasmus_n also_o 208._o whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o campian_n reason_n 8._o p._n 208._o a_o man_n deny_v by_o whitaker_n to_o be_v a_o writer_n of_o our_o side_n and_o by_o the_o martir-maker_n fox_n canonize_v for_o a_o saint_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n of_o luther_n &_o his_o disciple_n write_v after_o this_o sort_n arbitrio_fw-la sort_n erasmus_n lib_n 3._o de_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la what_o shall_v i_o recount_v here_o the_o dissension_n that_o be_v among_o these_o gospeler_n their_o bloody_a hatred_n their_o bitter_a contention_n nay_o their_o singular_a inconstancy_n luther_n himself_o have_v change_v his_o opinion_n so_o often_o and_o yet_o new_a paradox_n spring_v up_o from_o he_o daily_o hitherto_o erasmus_n final_o field_n although_o he_o extol_v luther_n for_o a_o worthy_a divine_a as_o ever_o the_o world_n have_v any_o in_o those_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v 170._o field_n book_n 3_o c._n 24._o p._n 170._o or_o in_o many_o age_n before_o yet_o confess_v that_o by_o degree_n he_o see_v and_o descry_v those_o popish_a error_n i_o use_v his_o word_n which_o at_o first_o he_o discern_v not_o but_o to_o excuse_v the_o matter_n he_o first_o avouch_v that_o in_o sundry_a point_n of_o great_a moment_n as_o of_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n of_o freewill_a grace_n justification_n the_o difference_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n faith_n and_o work_n christian_a liberty_n and_o the_o like_a he_o be_v ever_o constant_a which_o assertion_n of_o he_o how_o false_a it_o be_v that_o which_o i_o have_v before_o say_v touch_v freewill_a do_v demonstrate_v a_o other_o of_o his_o excuse_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o strange_a a_o thing_n as_o his_o adversary_n will_v make_v it_o seem_v to_o be_v that_o herein_o luther_n proceed_v by_o degree_n and_o in_o his_o late_a writing_n dislike_v that_o which_o in_o his_o former_a he_o do_v approve_v and_o his_o reason_n be_v because_o s._n augustine_n write_v a_o whole_a book_n of_o retractation_n s._n ambrose_n complain_v that_o he_o be_v force_v to_o teach_v before_o he_o have_v learn_v and_o so_o to_o deliver_v many_o thing_n that_o shall_v need_v a_o second_o reviewe_n and_o s._n thomas_n of_o aquine_n in_o his_o sum_n correct_v and_o alter_v many_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v write_v before_o against_o this_o i_o first_o reply_n that_o it_o excuse_v not_o luther_n building_n of_o his_o new_a belief_n upon_o his_o own_o judgement_n nay_o it_o prove_v manifest_o that_o he_o come_v not_o to_o it_o by_o the_o infallible_a direction_n of_o any_o external_a guide_n but_o by_o the_o discourse_n and_o search_v of_o his_o own_o wit_n and_o moreover_o etc._n caluin_n instit_fw-la book_n 4._o ch_z 3._o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n 4._o p._n 123_o 124._o etc._n etc._n that_o he_o be_v not_o extraordinary_o by_o internal_a inspiration_n instruct_v and_o send_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o diverse_a of_o these_o man_n seem_v plain_o to_o affirm_v for_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v perfect_a and_o they_o who_o he_o immediate_o send_v &_o direct_v in_o faith_n err_v not_o in_o any_o point_n of_o that_o argument_n but_o that_o his_o inconstant_a reason_n be_v the_o principal_a ground_n on_o which_o he_o build_v his_o say_a faith_n and_o religion_n second_o i_o add_v that_o the_o example_n bring_v by_o field_n in_o excuse_n of_o luther_n make_v nothing_o for_o his_o purpose_n for_o what_o if_o s._n augustine_n writing_n when_o he_o be_v yet_o a_o novice_n in_o christian_a religion_n and_o not_o full_o instruct_v err_v in_o some_o point_n which_o error_n have_v receive_v better_a instruction_n he_o reclaim_v what_o if_o the_o like_v happen_v to_o s._n ambrose_n be_v miraculous_o choose_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o a_o teacher_n before_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a what_o if_o s._n augustine_n before_o some_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v so_o thorough_o discuss_v and_o define_v in_o the_o church_n as_o afterward_o upon_o the_o rise_n of_o new_a heresy_n speak_v not_o so_o apt_o and_o proper_o as_o be_v needful_a in_o succeed_a time_n and_o therefore_o retract_v what_o he_o have_v utter_v what_o if_o he_o and_o s._n thomas_n of_o aquin_n in_o diverse_a matter_n disputable_a and_o not_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n alter_v and_o correct_v their_o former_a opinion_n so_o have_v cardinal_n baronius_n now_o do_v who_o have_v run_v over_o the_o first_o ten_o tome_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o make_v as_o it_o be_v a_o book_n of_o retractation_n recall_v such_o thing_n as_o he_o judge_v amiss_o what_o i_o say_v if_o also_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o as_o without_o doubt_n they_o be_v not_o otherwise_o shall_v it_o therefore_o be_v lawful_a for_o luther_n or_o any_o other_o person_n to_o leap_v up_o and_o down_o hither_o and_o thither_o and_o to_o chap_v and_o change_v his_o faith_n according_a as_o his_o fancy_n lead_v he_o in_o any_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n very_o i_o think_v to_o no_o man_n of_o judgement_n such_o a_o fault_n will_v seem_v excusable_a but_o be_v zwinglius_fw-la who_o as_o we_o have_v see_v so_o peremptory_o reprehend_v luther_n for_o his_o inconstancy_n himself_o free_a from_o this_o crime_n true_o he_o be_v not_o and_o because_o brevity_n suffer_v i_o not_o to_o run_v through_o his_o work_n and_o to_o show_v the_o change_n and_o alteration_n of_o his_o opinion_n concern_v all_o particular_a point_n in_o which_o he_o show_v himself_o inconstant_a i_o will_v only_o convince_v he_o of_o inconstancy_n touch_v one_o or_o two_o and_o that_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o before_o his_o fall_n from_o we_o he_o hold_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n otherwise_o without_o all_o doubt_n his_o novelty_n will_v have_v be_v note_v and_o censure_v his_o first_o alteration_n therefore_o concern_v this_o matter_n be_v from_o we_o to_o anabaptisme_n his_o second_o from_o anabaptisme_n in_o some_o sort_n to_o our_o belief_n again_o that_o he_o be_v once_o a_o anabaptist_n thus_o he_o confess_v wherefore_o i_o myself_o also_o confess_v frank_o say_v he_o that_o a_o few_o year_n since_o i_o be_v deceive_v with_o this_o error_n think_v it_o better_a to_o defer_v the_o baptism_n of_o young_a child_n until_o they_o come_v to_o perfe_a age_n thus_o zwinglius_fw-la that_o he_o partly_o recant_v afterward_o this_o heresy_n he_o declare_v in_o the_o same_o place_n i_o say_v partly_o because_o he_o always_o deny_v the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n to_o salvation_n that_o he_o be_v likewise_o inconstant_a in_o his_o belief_n of_o the_o eucharist_n these_o his_o own_o word_n testify_v 202._o zwingl_n tom_fw-mi 2._o comment_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la &_o salsa_fw-la religione_fw-la cap_n de_fw-fr eucharist_n fol._n 202._o we_o have_v write_v two_o year_n since_o of_o the_o eucharist_n where_o we_o have_v write_v many_o thing_n rather_o according_a to_o the_o time_n than_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o soon_o after_o if_o reader_n thou_o find_v certain_a thing_n here_o otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o former_a book_n do_v not_o thou_o wonder_v we_o will_v not_o give_v food_n out_o of_o season_n nor_o set_v pearl_n before_o swine_n final_o we_o retract_v therefore_o say_v he_o and_o revoke_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v say_v there_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o those_o which_o we_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o two_o and_o fortith_n year_n of_o our_o age_n counterpoise_v those_o which_o we_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o fortith_n when_o as_o we_o say_v we_o serve_v more_o the_o time_n than_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n that_o we_o may_v by_o that_o mean_v the_o more_o edify_v thus_o zwinglius_fw-la of_o himself_o who_o then_o can_v deny_v but_o he_o also_o be_v inconstant_a and_o at_o the_o least_o in_o outward_a show_n alter_v his_o belief_n yea_o do_v he_o not_o confess_v to_o
year_n of_o his_o reign_n seem_v principal_o to_o condemn_v the_o sacramentary_n who_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n wherefore_o lutheranisme_n then_o seem_v to_o prevail_v communion_n also_o under_o one_o kind_n in_o time_n of_o necessity_n be_v in_o it_o approve_v by_o another_o law_n enact_v in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o say_a king_n zwinglianisme_n be_v set_v up_o 1._o an._n 2._o edwardi_fw-la vi_fw-la cap._n 1._o and_o a_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n allow_v and_o establish_v as_o the_o say_a act_n pretend_v not_o only_o according_a to_o the_o most_o sincere_a and_o pure_a christian_a religion_n teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o also_o according_a to_o the_o usage_n of_o the_o primative_a church_n which_o book_n notwithstanding_o have_v be_v thrice_o review_v and_o alter_v and_o still_o according_a to_o the_o self_n fame_n word_n of_o god_n once_o in_o the_o same_o king_n edward_n day_n second_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o last_o by_o his_o majesty_n that_o now_o reign_v correct_v see_v the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n turn_v into_o latin_a by_o thomas_n vautrollerus_n print_v at_o london_n a_o 1574._o cum_fw-la privilegio_fw-la regiae_n majestatis_fw-la touch_v private_a baptism_n administer_v in_o house_n by_o lay-man_n or_o woman_n as_o also_o some_o other_o print_v in_o english_a before_o the_o last_o correct_v by_o his_o majesty_n who_o now_o reign_v and_o confer_v they_o with_o the_o say_v last_o correct_v and_o yet_o it_o be_v much_o dislike_v by_o the_o puritan_n and_o censure_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o say_a word_n and_o like_o as_o their_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n have_v be_v alter_v so_o also_o have_v their_o opinion_n concern_v some_o point_n of_o religion_n as_o i_o can_v easy_o show_v if_o time_n suffer_v i_o if_o any_o man_n be_v desirous_a to_o behold_v the_o like_a proceed_n among_o our_o puritan_n let_v he_o read_v the_o survey_v of_o their_o religion_n if_o i_o shall_v descend_v to_o the_o inconstancy_n of_o particular_a man_n of_o our_o english_a nation_n i_o shall_v never_o make_v a_o end_n yet_o one_o example_n i_o will_v not_o omit_v which_o be_v as_o follow_v during_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n a_o catholic_a prince_n diverse_a sectary_n from_o hence_o flee_v to_o geneva_n and_o there_o in_o the_o year_n 1558._o print_v sundry_a book_n in_o which_o by_o diverse_a testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n they_o endeavour_v ●o_o prove_v the_o government_n of_o woman_n even_o in_o temporal_a matter_n to_o be_v monstrous_a unnatural_a against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v suffer_v but_o the_o next_o year_n follow_v queen_n elizabeth_n come_v to_o the_o crown_n the_o same_o man_n find_v it_o agreeable_a to_o all_o scripture_n and_o all_o law_n that_o a_o woman_n may_v have_v supreme_a authority_n in_o thing_n also_o spiritual_a and_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o do_v all_o our_o adversary_n acknowledge_v this_o their_o levity_n as_o a_o fault_n very_o no_o yea_o caluin_n approve_v it_o and_o indeavour_v to_o defend_v it_o from_o all_o suspicion_n of_o a_o vice_n thus_o he_o discourse_v 135._o discourse_v caluin_n de_fw-fr scandalis_fw-la pag._n 135._o many_o complain_v that_o they_o be_v scandalize_v that_o they_o see_v not_o all_o thing_n together_o in_o the_o same_o moment_n that_o so_o hard_a a_o work_n be_v not_o thorough_o and_o perfect_o polish_v the_o first_o day_n how_o importune_v and_o out_o of_o season_n these_o delicacy_n be_v who_o see_v not_o for_o they_o do_v as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v accuse_v we_o that_o at_o the_o first_o break_v of_o the_o day_n we_o see_v not_o as_o yet_o the_o sun_n shine_v at_o noon_n day_n and_o soon_o after_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o common_a than_o these_o complaint_n wherefore_o be_v not_o that_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o follow_v present_o exact_o prescribe_v unto_o we_o wherefore_o do_v this_o lie_n hide_v more_o than_o other_o thing_n will_v there_o be_v at_o the_o length_n any_o end_n if_o it_o shall_v be_v permit_v ever_o now_o and_o then_o to_o go_v further_o certain_o they_o that_o speak_v after_o this_o sort_n either_o envy_n the_o profit_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n or_o be_v sorry_a that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v promote_v to_o the_o better_a hitherto_o be_v caluin_n word_n concern_v the_o same_o matter_n in_o another_o place_n he_o have_v this_o censure_n westphalum_fw-la caluin_n admonit_a 3._o ad_fw-la westphalum_fw-la a_o law_n over_o hard_a say_v he_o be_v prescribe_v to_o learned_a man_n if_o after_o a_o proof_n of_o their_o wit_n and_o learning_n publish_v it_o may_v not_o be_v lawful_a to_o they_o to_o profit_v any_o thing_n during_o their_o life_n thus_o caluin_n in_o which_o his_o discourse_n he_o do_v not_o only_o confess_v himself_o and_o his_o brother_n to_o have_v be_v inconstant_a but_o also_o seek_v a_o defence_n of_o this_o inconstancy_n but_o how_o absurd_o he_o reason_v every_o man_n of_o sense_n may_v easy_o perceive_v for_o our_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n depend_v not_o as_o he_o seem_v here_o to_o imagine_v upon_o the_o wit_n and_o learning_n of_o any_o man_n neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o any_o man_n be_v he_o never_o so_o wise_a or_o learned_a to_o call_v any_o one_o article_n by_o any_o mean_n into_o doubt_n for_o all_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v reveal_v by_o god_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o but_o caluin_n here_o plain_o grant_v that_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n build_v their_o belief_n upon_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o judgement_n not_o upon_o any_o certain_a and_o infallible_a ground_n and_o consequent_o that_o they_o vary_v and_o alter_v the_o same_o according_a to_o their_o progress_n in_o learning_n and_o other_o motive_n of_o their_o understanding_n like_a as_o philosopher_n do_v their_o opinion_n concern_v matter_n of_o philosophy_n indifferent_a and_o doubtful_a and_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a ground_n of_o our_o adversary_n inconstancy_n some_o other_o cause_v there_o may_v be_v assign_v why_o they_o be_v inconstant_a to_o wit_n that_o some_o of_o they_o make_v their_o temporal_a prince_n their_o absolute_a guide_n and_o immediate_a head_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n wherefore_o as_o often_o as_o upon_o any_o consideration_n of_o policy_n or_o any_o other_o respect_n the_o prince_n change_v his_o mind_n so_o often_o also_o be_v religion_n alter_v but_o whether_o this_o alteration_n in_o any_o man_n proceed_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o prince_n or_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a or_o any_o other_o such_o cause_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o it_o argue_v and_o prove_v no_o certain_a foundation_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v in_o he_o that_o so_o change_v and_o beside_o this_o he_o do_v also_o approve_v this_o or_o that_o belief_n or_o religion_n because_o for_o some_o one_o or_o other_o respect_v it_o please_v his_o own_o fancy_n and_o like_v as_o these_o sectary_n so_o be_v all_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n inconstant_a especial_o the_o arian_n 32._o socrates_n lib._n 2._o hist_o ca._n 32._o who_o as_o socrates_n report_v alter_v their_o creed_n or_o form_n of_o belief_n no_o less_o than_o ten_o time_n hence_o it_o proceed_v that_o none_o of_o these_o new_a sectary_n can_v ever_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o have_v attain_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o of_o this_o their_o inconstancy_n be_v a_o most_o manifest_a argument_n for_o i_o think_v that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o that_o have_v change_v his_o belief_n will_v easy_o grant_v that_o once_o he_o live_v in_o error_n and_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o every_o one_o alter_v condemn_v his_o former_a faith_n which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o how_o can_v such_o man_n certain_o know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o error_n still_o what_o warrant_v have_v they_o after_o their_o change_n more_o than_o they_o have_v before_o but_o beside_o this_o reason_n every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v other_o motive_n to_o make_v he_o uncertain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o own_o religion_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o his_o company_n luther_n zwinglius_fw-la caluin_n and_o the_o rest_n have_v err_v and_o consequent_o that_o he_o also_o may_v err_v that_o as_o wise_a and_o as_o learned_a man_n as_o he_o be_v himself_o censure_v his_o belief_n to_o be_v false_a and_o erroneous_a etc._n etc._n he_o that_o be_v unlearned_a may_v also_o consider_v that_o if_o he_o build_v upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a he_o can_v possible_o assure_v himself_o that_o they_o do_v not_o err_v yea_o see_v that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o affirm_v his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a and_o yet_o they_o disagree_v in_o faith_n he_o may_v well_o assure_v himself_o that_o some_o of_o they_o do_v err_v for_o contrary_n can_v both_o be_v true_a and_o how_o can_v he_o certain_o judge_v who_o
arise_v his_o word_n of_o they_o be_v these_o their_o opinion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o begin_v with_o lie_n argentinum_n luther_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la joannen_n heruagrum_fw-la typographun_v argentinum_n and_o with_o lie_v they_o do_v defend_v the_o same_o and_o they_o broach_v it_o abroad_o by_o the_o wicked_a favour_n of_o corrupt_v other_o man_n book_n hitherto_o luther_n but_o perhaps_o my_o reader_n may_v here_o desire_v to_o see_v some_o precedent_n of_o some_o protestant_a book_n corrupt_v by_o some_o english_a sectary_n and_o that_o confess_v by_o a_o protstant_a behold_v i_o have_v such_o a_o precedent_n or_o two_o at_o hand_n the_o author_n of_o the_o survey_v of_o the_o pretend_a holy_a discipline_n a_o man_n of_o good_a credit_n among_o protestant_n have_v allege_v traverse_v his_o latin_a book_n dc_o discipline_n 225._o survey_v of_o the_o pretend_a holy_a discipline_n print_v anno_fw-la 1593._o ch_z 19_o pa._n 224._o 225._o ecclesiast_fw-la fol._n 119._o bring_v forth_o this_o reason_n why_o he_o allege_v not_o the_o english_a translate_v by_o some_o english_a sectary_n but_o you_o must_v remember_v say_v he_o that_o i_o do_v refer_v you_o to_o this_o latin_a book_n and_o not_o to_o the_o english_a translation_n of_o it_o why_o some_o may_v say_v be_v it_o not_o faithful_o translate_v shall_v we_o think_v that_o such_o zealous_a man_n as_o have_v to_o deal_v herein_o will_v serve_v we_o as_o the_o jesuite_n do_v it_o be_v we_o know_v a_o practice_n with_o that_o false_a hipocritical_a brood_n or_o rather_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v a_o false_a slander_n impose_v upon_o they_o to_o leave_v out_o and_o thrust_v in_o what_o they_o listen_v into_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o thereby_o in_o time_n nothing_o may_v appear_v which_o shall_v any_o way_n make_v against_o they_o but_o we_o will_v never_o suspect_v nor_o believe_v that_o any_o man_n who_o fear_v god_n and_o least_o of_o all_o that_o any_o of_o that_o sort_n which_o be_v so_o earnest_a against_o all_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n shall_v play_v such_o a_o prank_n sure_o we_o do_v well_o to_o judge_v the_o best_a and_o i_o myself_o be_v of_o your_o opinian_n but_o now_o i_o be_o clean_o alter_v how_o be_v some_o of_o vrsinus_n work_v use_v at_o cambridge_n and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o some_o other_o book_n have_v be_v handle_v very_o strange_o else_o where_o but_o concern_v the_o present_a point_n this_o the_o truth_n the_o translator_n of_o traverse_n book_n have_v quite_o omit_v the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v and_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o tend_v to_o that_o purpose_n even_o seventeen_o line_n together_o so_o as_o if_o you_o see_v but_o the_o english_a book_n you_o shall_v not_o find_v so_o much_o as_o one_o step_n whereby_o you_o may_v suspect_v that_o ever_o m._n traverse_v have_v carry_v so_o hard_a a_o hand_n over_o the_o pretended_a widow_n if_o the_o translator_n have_v receive_v any_o commission_n from_o the_o author_n to_o have_v deal_v in_o that_o sort_n with_o his_o book_n yet_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v signify_v either_o in_o some_o preface_n or_o in_o some_o note_n or_o by_o some_o mean_n or_o other_o but_o to_o leave_v luch_v a_o matter_n out_o and_o to_o give_v no_o general_a warning_n of_o it_o i_o tell_v you_o plain_o it_o be_v great_a dishonesty_n and_o lewdness_n hitherto_o be_v the_o protestant_a author_n word_n in_o the_o aforesaid_a survey_v but_o to_o come_v yet_o a_o little_a near_o to_o m._n crashaw_n what_o will_v he_o say_v if_o i_o find_v he_o guilty_a of_o corruption_n and_o forgery_n in_o this_o very_a book_n in_o which_o he_o reprehend_v we_o this_o indeed_o be_v something_o to_o the_o purpose_n but_o as_o a_o discreet_a man_n will_v think_v hardly_o to_o be_v prove_v true_a in_o he_o that_o so_o sharp_o in_o this_o very_a treatise_n argue_v and_o blame_v other_o for_o this_o crime_n well_o i_o will_v do_v my_o endeavour_n and_o this_o argument_n i_o bring_v against_o he_o he_o that_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o cite_v the_o say_n of_o other_o patch_v in_o &_o leave_v out_o word_n of_o their_o say_a sentence_n to_o serve_v his_o own_o turn_n be_v a_o corrupter_n and_o a_o forger_n of_o other_o man_n say_n but_o m._n crashaw_n do_v this_o in_o his_o book_n make_v of_o romish_a forgery_n and_o falsification_n therefore_o he_o be_v a_o corrupter_n and_o a_o forger_n of_o other_o man_n say_n the_o major_a and_o first_o proposition_n can_v be_v deny_v by_o m._n crashaw_n for_o if_o he_o incur_v the_o crime_n of_o corruption_n and_o forgery_n as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o high_a degree_n that_o deal_v so_o with_o other_o man_n book_n how_o shall_v we_o excuse_v he_o from_o they_o that_o deal_v so_o with_o other_o man_n saying_n or_o sentence_n let_v we_o therefore_o see_v whether_o we_o can_v prove_v the_o minor_a or_o second_o proposition_n the_o truth_n of_o which_o i_o declare_v after_o this_o sort_n &c_n prologomena_n t._n 3._o thus_o you_o &c_n &c_n m._n crashaw_n in_o his_o epistle_n or_o preface_n to_o his_o belove_a countryman_n the_o seduce_v papist_n of_o england_n contend_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o index_n of_o forbid_a book_n and_o the_o indices_fw-la expurgatorij_fw-la be_v the_o pope_n work_n write_v thus_o for_o your_o better_a satisfaction_n i_o will_v set_v you_o down_o brief_o the_o rule_n to_o this_o purpose_n agree_v upon_o in_o that_o council_n and_o confirm_v afterwards_o by_o diverse_a pope_n haereticorum_fw-la libri_fw-la ut_fw-la lutheri_fw-la zwinglij_fw-la caluini_fw-la &_o his_o similium_fw-la cuiuscunque_fw-la nominis_fw-la tituli_fw-la aut_fw-la argumenti_fw-la existant_fw-la omnino_fw-la prohibentur_fw-la the_o book_n of_o heretic_n as_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la caluin_n and_o other_o like_v to_o these_o under_o what_o name_n title_n or_o argument_n soever_o they_o be_v extant_a be_v altogether_o prohibit_v thus_o crashaw_n and_o in_o the_o margin_n he_o have_v these_o word_n regula_n secunda_fw-la in_o concilio_fw-la tridentino_n &_o indice_fw-la roma_fw-la clementis_fw-la octavi_fw-la the_o 2._o rule_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o roman_a index_n of_o clement_n the_o eight_o but_o in_o these_o word_n he_o have_v corrupt_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o of_o the_o roman_a index_n of_o clement_n the_o eight_o and_o no_o such_o rule_n be_v to_o be_v find_v as_o he_o here_o set_v down_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o forger_n and_o corrupter_n i_o will_v recite_v the_o whole_a rule_n as_o i_o find_v it_o in_o all_o those_o book_n to_o the_o end_n that_o my_o reader_n may_v see_v i_o do_v he_o no_o wrong_n the_o book_n of_o heretic_n as_o well_o of_o those_o who_o find_v and_o raise_v heresy_n after_o the_o aforesaid_a year_n 1515._o as_o of_o those_o who_o be_v or_o have_v be_v head_n or_o captain_n of_o heretic_n such_o as_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la caluin_n balthasar_n pacimontanus_fw-la swenckfeldius_fw-la and_o like_v unto_o these_o be_v of_o what_o title_n name_n or_o argument_n soever_o they_o be_v be_v altogether_o forbid_v the_o book_n of_o other_o heretic_n also_o which_o treat_v ex_fw-la professo_fw-la of_o religion_n that_o be_v who_o principal_a argument_n be_v of_o religion_n be_v altogether_o forbid_v but_o such_o as_o treat_v not_o of_o religion_n examine_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o bishop_n and_o inquisitour_n by_o catholic_a divine_n and_o approve_a be_v permit_v hitherto_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o rule_n out_o of_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o m._n crashaw_n by_o place_v the_o word_n heretic_n in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o word_n archeretike_n have_v falsify_v the_o say_a rule_n and_o turn_v it_o to_o a_o clean_a contrary_a sense_n for_o whereas_o the_o rule_n say_v that_o certain_a book_n of_o some_o heretic_n be_v permit_v he_o make_v it_o say_v the_o book_n of_o heretic_n under_o what_o name_n title_n or_o argument_n whatsoever_o be_v prohibit_v and_o this_o as_o it_o may_v seem_v he_o do_v to_o persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o we_o be_v so_o strict_a in_o this_o matter_n that_o we_o suffer_v not_o any_o book_n whatsoever_o write_v by_o heretic_n be_v they_o never_o so_o profitable_a to_o be_v read_v which_o be_v false_a this_o be_v one_o corruption_n so_o palpable_a that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v i_o will_v not_o urge_v that_o in_o the_o three_o rule_n he_o name_v junius_n his_o translation_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o bezaes_n of_o the_o new_a whereas_o these_o author_n or_o their_o translation_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o name_v in_o the_o rule_n as_o it_o be_v find_v in_o our_o book_n and_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o come_v to_o his_o rehearsal_n of_o our_o instruction_n for_o the_o purge_n and_o correction_n of_o book_n before_o he_o set_v down_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v to_o be_v amend_v translate_n that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o our_o book_n before_o
use_v or_o prescribe_v unto_o which_o i_o may_v add_v that_o luther_n as_o it_o seem_v receive_v some_o light_n from_o above_o if_o it_o be_v true_a which_o be_v affirm_v in_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o god_n send_v he_o to_o give_v light_n to_o the_o world_n but_o if_o no_o sacramentary_a can_v compare_v any_o one_o of_o his_o learned_a master_n with_o luther_n much_o less_o can_v he_o prefer_v himself_o before_o he_o which_o nevertheless_o he_o must_v needs_o do_v if_o he_o be_v obstinate_a in_o his_o sacramentary_a doctrine_n and_o as_o judge_v pronounce_v luther_n belief_n to_o be_v false_a and_o erroneous_a and_o thus_o much_o of_o luther_n censure_n against_o the_o sacramentary_n the_o lutheran_n also_o man_n very_o learned_a who_o the_o english_a protestant_n if_o whitaker_n say_v true_o 259_o true_o whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o campians_n 8._o reason_n p._n 259_o embrace_v as_o their_o dear_a brother_n in_o christ_n pronounce_v the_o same_o sentence_n against_o these_o sectary_n and_o in_o particular_a conradus_n schlusselburge_n even_o now_o allege_v be_v a_o lutheran_n superintendent_n of_o great_a name_n and_o authority_n 3._o authority_n conradus_n schlusselb_n in_o catalogue_n haereticorum_fw-la nostri_fw-la temporis_fw-la lib._n 1._o pa._n 1._o &_o 2._o &_o lib._n 3._o place_v they_o in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o heretic_n of_o these_o our_o day_n luke_n osiander_n who_o encheridion_n against_o we_o some_o english_a protestant_n have_v of_o late_a corrupt_o translate_v into_o our_o tongue_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o like_a book_n make_v against_o the_o caluinist_n have_v recite_v sixteen_o of_o their_o assertion_n which_o he_o condemn_v afterward_o write_v thus_o 1603._o thus_o lucas_n osiander_n in_o enchirid_n count_v caluinianos_n in_o conclus_n pa._n 267._o print_v anno_o 1607._o publish_v by_o he_o anno_fw-la 1603._o let_v any_o godly_a or_o friendly_a reader_n whatsoever_o think_v what_o deadly_a poison_n satan_n do_v power_n unto_o man_n under_o the_o caluinian_a doctrine_n by_o which_o all_o christianisme_n almost_o be_v overthrow_v most_o of_o the_o rest_n proceed_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n but_o i_o can_v stand_v to_o recite_v their_o word_n of_o all_o which_o i_o conclude_v that_o the_o faith_n and_o religion_n of_o every_o sacramentary_a be_v judge_v false_a and_o heretical_a by_o luther_n and_o all_o the_o lutheran_n unto_o which_o i_o add_v that_o if_o he_o be_v a_o english_a protestant_n the_o puritan_n esteem_v he_o little_o better_o than_o a_o infidel_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o sundry_a admonition_n to_o the_o parliament_n and_o the_o book_n of_o dangerous_a position_n write_v by_o a_o protestant_n if_o he_o be_v a_o puritan_n the_o protestant_n censure_v he_o to_o be_v 311._o be_v powel_n in_o his_o consideration_n see_v a_o christian_a &_o modest_a offer_n pag._n 9_o the_o survey_n of_o the_o pretend_a holy_a discipline_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 311._o a_o notorious_a and_o manifest_a schismatic_n and_o a_o member_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n nay_o whether_o he_o be_v english_fw-fr protestant_n or_o puritan_n zwinglius_fw-la a_o most_o excellent_a man_n as_o well_o as_o luther_n as_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n avouch_v 124._o avouch_v apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n 4._o pag._n 124._o send_v of_o god_n to_o give_v light_n to_o the_o world_n whetenhal_o call_v he_o 75._o he_o whetenhal_o in_o his_o discourse_n of_o the_o abuse_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 75._o the_o first_o light_n set_v up_o by_o god_n among_o all_o the_o golden_a candlestick_n of_o helvetia_n with_o all_o his_o zwinglian_o tell_v he_o 63._o he_o see_v zwingl_n to_o 2._o epist_n ad_fw-la quandam_fw-la germaniae_fw-la civitatem_fw-la fol._n 196._o &_o in_o commentaris_fw-la de_fw-la vera_fw-la &_o falsa_fw-la relig_n c._n de_fw-fr sacram._n &_o lib._n de_fw-fr baptis_n fol._n 63._o that_o he_o err_v in_o his_o faith_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n if_o he_o be_v a_o zwinglian_n etc._n zwinglian_n caluini_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la edit_fw-la a_o 1540_o gallice_n &_o latin_a a_o 1545._o &_o l._n 4._o institut_fw-la cap._n 15._o §._o 1._o etc._n etc._n caluin_n with_o all_o his_o caluinist_n english_a protestant_n and_o puritan_n tell_v he_o the_o like_a so_o that_o be_v he_o of_o what_o sacramentary_a sect_n soever_o he_o please_v his_o faith_n and_o religion_n receive_v a_o threefold_a censure_n that_o it_o be_v false_a and_o that_o from_o his_o own_o brother_n for_o first_o it_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o lutheran_n then_o by_o the_o zwinglian_o and_o english_a protestant_n if_o he_o be_v a_o puritan_n or_o caluinist_n or_o by_o the_o zwinglian_o and_o puritan_n or_o caluinist_n if_o he_o be_v a_o english_a protestant_n or_o final_o by_o the_o english_a protestant_n and_o caluinist_n among_o who_o i_o number_v the_o puritan_n if_o he_o be_v a_o zwinglian_n and_o what_o wise_a man_n will_v be_v obstinate_a in_o the_o defence_n of_o such_o a_o faith_n but_o what_o if_o he_o be_v a_o lutheran_n do_v he_o avoid_v this_o inconvenience_n true_o he_o be_v in_o the_o very_a like_o case_n for_o first_o he_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v of_o a_o wrong_a belief_n by_o all_o the_o sacramentary_n then_o if_o he_o be_v a_o strict_a or_o rigid_a lutheran_n he_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o mild_a or_o soft_a lutheran_n if_o he_o be_v a_o mild_a or_o soft_a lutheran_n he_o be_v deem_v a_o heretic_n by_o the_o strict_a or_o rigid_a nay_o etc._n nay_o conradus_n schlusselbur_n in_o catalogue_n haereticorum_fw-la nostri_fw-la temporis_fw-la in_o principio_fw-la lib._n 1._o etc._n etc._n conradus_n schlusselburge_n place_v six_o sect_n of_o his_o own_a lutheran_n in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o heretic_n of_o which_o the_o one_o condemn_v the_o other_o and_o he_o give_v the_o same_o sentence_n against_o they_o al._n but_o because_o few_o or_o no_o lutheran_n as_o be_v probable_a will_v ever_o come_v to_o the_o read_n of_o this_o treatise_n i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o discuss_v and_o prove_v these_o thing_n at_o large_a and_o in_o particular_a and_o therefore_o concern_v this_o motive_n let_v this_o suffice_v a_o second_o reason_n or_o motive_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o exclude_v obstinacy_n from_o the_o hart_n of_o any_o one_o of_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n be_v that_o all_o the_o learned_a and_o principal_a sectary_n as_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la caluin_n &_o other_o have_v notorious_o and_o gross_o err_v in_o some_o point_n or_o other_o touch_v religious_a matter_n the_o short_a limit_n of_o a_o preface_n will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o declare_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o in_o they_o all_o wherefore_o i_o will_v exemplify_v only_o in_o the_o three_o name_v which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o to_o begin_v with_o luther_n do_v not_o this_o great_a patriarch_n and_o father_n of_o all_o protestant_n teach_v and_o obstinate_o hold_v that_o christ_n suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o die_v according_a to_o his_o divinity_n thus_o he_o write_v 2._o write_v luth._o in_o confess_v majori_fw-la de_fw-la coena_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o lib._n de_fw-fr concilijs_fw-la part_n 2._o if_o i_o believe_v that_o only_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n suffer_v for_o i_o christ_n be_v a_o base_a saviour_n not_o of_o any_o great_a price_n or_o value_n yea_o be_v himself_o need_v a_o saviour_n hence_o zwinglius_fw-la exclaim_v etc._n exclaim_v zwingl_n to_o 2._o in_o respon_n ad_fw-la lutheri_fw-la confess_v fol._n 458._o 469._o 470._o &_o in_o respon_n ad_fw-la luther_n lib._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la f._n 411._o 401._o 337._o etc._n etc._n this_o can_v by_o no_o reason_n be_v explain_v or_o excuse_v for_o luther_n clear_o and_o manifest_o confess_v that_o he_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v christ_n to_o be_v his_o saviour_n if_o only_o his_o humanity_n have_v suffer_v he_o call_v he_o also_o martion_n and_o say_v he_o be_v guilty_a of_o most_o high_a blaspheamy_a against_o the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n do_v not_o the_o same_o luther_n also_o defend_v 1523._o defend_v see_v luth._o l._n de_fw-la captivitat_fw-la babylon_n c._n de_fw-fr baptis_n &_o lib._n cont_n cocblaeun_fw-mi anno_fw-la 1523._o that_o infant_n in_o baptism_n actual_o believe_v very_o although_o m._n field_n endeavour_v to_o wrest_v his_o word_n 179._o word_n field_n book_n 3_o ch_z 44._o p._n 179._o to_o habitual_a faith_n which_o he_o say_v be_v in_o infant_n yet_o luther_n discourse_n admit_v not_o that_o sense_n as_o will_v easy_o appear_v to_o the_o reader_n of_o which_o also_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o disciple_n who_o even_o at_o this_o present_n 2._o present_n kennitius_n in_o examine_v council_n trident._n can_v 13._o de_fw-fr baptis_n sess_v 7._o zucas_fw-la osiand_n in_o enchirid_n count_v anabapt_n print_n anno_o 1607._o c._n 2._o quaest_n 2._o affirm_v that_o infant_n while_o they_o be_v baptize_v actual_o believe_v be_v a_o manifest_a token_n
book_n lucas_n osiander_n in_o enchirid_n count_n caluimanos_fw-la cap._n 7._o pag._n 198._o but_o here_o gentle_a reader_n beyond_o and_o above_o those_o blaspheamous_a thing_n which_o in_o the_o discourse_n before_o we_o hear_v against_o the_o son_n of_o god_n out_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o our_o adversary_n the_o caluinist_n pandit_n se_fw-la vorago_fw-la &_o barathrum_fw-la caluinianae_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la a_o gulf_n or_o whirlpool_n and_o a_o bell_n of_o caluinian_a doctrine_n open_v itself_o in_o which_o if_o thou_o diligent_o weigh_v the_o matter_n god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n &_o it_o be_v so_o teach_v by_o our_o adversary_n concern_v election_n to_o salvation_n that_o who_o shall_v embrace_v this_o their_o doctrine_n tentation_n assault_v he_o must_v needs_o either_o be_v cast_v into_o despair_n or_o fall_v into_o epicurism_n and_o hence_o must_v of_o necessity_n arise_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n manifest_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n thus_o lucas_n osiander_n who_o a_o english_a sectary_n in_o his_o book_n against_o we_o translate_v make_v to_o speak_v like_o a_o very_a good_a caluinist_n if_o any_o man_n be_v desirous_a to_o see_v a_o brief_a sum_n of_o the_o caluinian_a and_o zwinglian_n belief_n touch_v this_o and_o other_o such_o like_a article_n he_o shall_v find_v it_o gather_v together_o in_o the_o same_o place_n by_o the_o same_o author_n as_o also_o by_o grawerus_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o second_o book_n cite_v heshusius_fw-la a_o three_o lutheran_n writer_n esteem_v among_o the_o learn_a of_o that_o sect_n heshusij_n conrade_n schlusselburg_n lib._n 2._o theolog._n caluinist_n pag._n 6._o see_v clebetius_fw-la in_o victoria_fw-la veritatis_fw-la &_o ruina_fw-la papatus_fw-la saxonici_fw-la arg_fw-mi 15._o conradus_n schluss_n loco_fw-la cit_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 6._o pag._n 25._o 26._o beza_n in_o abster_n calumni_fw-la arun_v heshusij_n &_o much_o commend_v by_o conradus_n schlusselburge_n for_o this_o cause_n exclaim_v against_o the_o caluinist_n that_o they_o transform_v god_n into_o the_o devil_n but_o caluin_n be_v not_o only_o accuse_v of_o this_o impiety_n by_o the_o lutheran_n but_o also_o by_o castalio_n a_o sacramentary_a who_o dispute_v of_o caluins_n opinion_n touch_v this_o point_n make_v a_o distinction_n or_o difference_n between_o the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o god_n of_o caluin_n these_o be_v his_o word_n praedest_fw-la word_n castal_n in_o l._n ad_fw-la caluin_n de_fw-fr praedest_fw-la the_o false_a god_n that_o be_v caluins_n god_n by_o he_o describe_v be_v slow_a to_o mercy_n prone_a to_o anger_n who_o have_v create_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o destruction_n and_o have_v predestinate_v they_o not_o only_o to_o damnation_n but_o also_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o damnation_n therefore_o he_o have_v decree_v from_o all_o eternity_n and_o be_v will_v have_v it_o so_o and_o be_v do_v bring_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o they_o necessary_o sin_n so_o that_o neither_o theft_n nor_o murder_n nor_o adultery_n be_v commit_v but_o by_o his_o constraint_n and_o impulsion_n for_o be_v sugge_v unto_o man_n evil_a and_o dishonest_a affection_n not_o only_o by_o permission_n sed_fw-la efficaciter_fw-la but_o effectual_o that_o be_v by_o force_v such_o affection_n upon_o they_o and_o do_v harden_v they_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o when_o they_o do_v evil_a they_o do_v rather_o the_o work_n of_o god_n than_o their_o own_o he_o make_v the_o devil_n a_o liar_n so_o that_o now_o not_o the_o devil_n but_o the_o god_n of_o caluin_n be_v the_o father_n of_o lie_n but_o that_o god_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v be_v altogether_o contrary_a to_o this_o god_n of_o caluin_n etc._n etc._n and_o soon_o after_o for_o the_o true_a god_n come_v to_o destroy_v that_o work_n of_o that_o caluinian_a god_n and_o these_o two_o god_n as_o they_o be_v by_o nature_n contrary_a to_o one_o another_o so_o they_o beget_v and_o bring_v forth_o child_n of_o contrary_a disposition_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n of_o caluin_n child_n without_o mercy_n proud_a etc._n etc._n hitherto_o castalio_n a_o man_n high_o commend_v by_o bibliotheca_fw-la by_o humfred_n de_fw-fr rat_n interpret_v lib._n 1._o p._n 26._o gesnerus_fw-la in_o bibliotheca_fw-la d._n humphrey_n and_o gesnerus_fw-la likewise_o learned_a scholar_n of_o the_o sacramentary_a sect_n but_o note_v that_o in_o this_o his_o discourse_n he_o well_o declare_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o before_o i_o relate_v as_o say_v by_o heshusius_fw-la to_o wit_n that_o caluin_n and_o his_o scholar_n by_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n and_o ascribe_v unto_o he_o other_o such_o like_a action_n transform_v he_o into_o the_o devil_n or_o rather_o as_o castalio_n say_v make_v the_o devil_n their_o god_n if_o any_o man_n be_v desirous_a to_o see_v this_o more_o full_o and_o exact_o handle_v let_v he_o read_v grawerus_n in_o the_o book_n and_o chapter_n before_o cite_v now_o touch_v caluin_n in_o particular_a what_o christian_n do_v not_o abhor_v and_o detest_v that_o his_o intolerable_a blaspheamy_a by_o which_o he_o affirm_v our_o lord_n during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o passion_n to_o have_v fear_v eternal_a damnation_n to_o have_v be_v forsake_v of_o god_n to_o have_v suffer_v in_o soul_n the_o torment_n of_o hell_n let_v we_o hear_v he_o in_o his_o own_o word_n declare_v his_o own_o opinion_n these_o be_v some_o of_o his_o sentence_n christ_n be_v put_v in_o steed_n of_o wicked_a doer_n as_o surety_n and_o pledge_n 39_o caluin_n instit_fw-la book_n 2._o ch_z 16._o §._o 10._o idem_fw-la in_o math._n 26._o vers_fw-la 39_o yea_o and_o as_o the_o very_a guilty_a person_n himself_o to_o abide_v and_o suffer_v all_o the_o punishment_n that_o shall_v have_v be_v lay_v upon_o they_o this_o one_o thing_n except_v that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v hold_v still_o of_o the_o sorrow_n of_o death_n or_o hell_n his_o prayer_n in_o the_o garden_n be_v a_o abrupt_a desire_n he_o be_v strike_v with_o fear_n and_o strait_v with_o anxiety_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o among_o violent_a flood_n ostentation_n he_o be_v force_v as_o it_o be_v to_o stagger_v or_o waver_v now_o with_o one_o and_o then_o with_o another_o desire_n he_o correct_v and_o recall_v that_o desire_n upon_o the_o sudden_a pass_v from_o he_o he_o refuse_v as_o much_o as_o lay_v in_o he_o and_o seek_v to_o put_v off_o the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n the_o vehemency_n of_o grief_n take_v from_o he_o the_o present_a memory_n of_o the_o heavenly_a decree_n christ_n death_n have_v be_v to_o no_o effect_n 39_o caluin_n instit_fw-la book_n 2._o ch_z 16._o §._o 10._o ibid._n §._o 12._o idem_fw-la ad_fw-la c._n 26._o math._n v._o 39_o if_o he_o have_v suffer_v only_o a_o corporal_a death_n but_o it_o behove_v also_o that_o he_o shall_v feel_v the_o rigour_n of_o god_n vengeance_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v as_o it_o be_v hand_n to_o hand_n wrestle_v with_o the_o army_n of_o the_o hell_n and_o the_o horror_n of_o eternal_a death_n he_o have_v a_o more_o cruel_a and_o hard_a battle_n then_o with_o common_a death_n he_o see_v the_o anger_n of_o god_n set_v before_o he_o in_o as_o much_o as_o be_v burden_v with_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n present_v himself_o before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o god_n he_o can_v not_o but_o horrible_o fear_v profundam_fw-la mortis_fw-la abyssum_fw-la the_o bottomless_a depth_n of_o death_n or_o eternal_a damnation_n 10._o caluin_n instit_fw-la book_n 2._o ch_z 16._o §._o 10._o he_o suffer_v in_o his_o soul_n the_o terrible_a torment_n of_o a_o damn_a and_o forsake_v man_n 46._o man_n idem_fw-la in_o c._n 27._o math._n v._o 46._o when_o the_o image_n or_o show_v of_o the_o tentation_n be_v lay_v before_o christ_n as_o though_o god_n be_v his_o enemy_n he_o be_v now_o destine_v to_o destruction_n or_o damnation_n he_o be_v strike_v with_o horror_n 16._o horror_n instit_fw-la book_n 2._o chap._n 16._o he_o be_v fearful_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o soul_n he_o fight_v hand_n to_o hand_n with_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n with_o the_o horror_n of_o death_n or_o damnation_n with_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n hitherto_o be_v some_o of_o caluin_n blaspheamous_a assertion_n against_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n i_o need_v not_o allege_v any_o protestant_a author_n accuse_v he_o of_o this_o impiety_n for_o his_o word_n be_v plain_a and_o his_o book_n be_v in_o every_o man_n hand_n nay_o which_o be_v worse_o some_o principal_a english_a sectary_n follow_v these_o his_o blaspheamous_a course_n and_o uphold_v his_o doctrine_n as_o euangelical_n such_o be_v fulke_n whitaker_n willet_n and_o other_o but_o listen_v a_o little_a what_o a_o conclusion_n may_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o one_o proposition_n take_v from_o caluin_n and_o a_o other_o from_o the_o great_a part_n of_o our_o english_a protestant_n although_o diverse_a notable_a reason_n be_v assign_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o
her_o doctrine_n be_v true_a and_o may_v secure_o be_v follow_v without_o any_o danger_n of_o error_n unto_o these_o argument_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n reason_n itself_o assent_v for_o see_v that_o for_o diverse_a respect_n it_o be_v convenient_a that_o christ_n our_o lord_n shall_v not_o always_o converse_v on_o earth_n among_o we_o and_o in_o his_o own_o person_n manage_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v leave_v among_o christian_n some_o certain_a rule_n &_o guide_v whereby_o they_o may_v direct_v their_o faith_n and_o some_o judge_n for_o the_o decide_n of_o daily_a controversy_n which_o may_v arise_v touch_v matter_n of_o religion_n who_o judgement_n they_o may_v secure_o follow_v without_o all_o danger_n of_o be_v deceive_v neither_o can_v we_o imagine_v that_o god_n infinite_a wisdom_n foresee_v all_o thing_n and_o time_n to_o come_v or_o his_o unspeakable_a goodness_n and_o love_n to_o his_o church_n can_v order_v thing_n otherwise_o and_o this_o infallible_a guide_n and_o supreme_a judge_n be_v the_o church_n include_v the_o pope_n and_o other_o her_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n it_o be_v also_o needful_a see_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o endure_v for_o ever_o i_o mean_v on_o earth_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o be_v to_o all_o person_n a_o perfect_a guide_n in_o all_o age_n to_o salvation_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v preserve_v from_o false_a doctrine_n and_o ruin_n otherwise_o it_o can_v not_o at_o all_o time_n have_v perform_v these_o office_n our_o adversary_n will_v answer_v that_o the_o church_n through_o false_a doctrine_n and_o superstition_n have_v already_o perish_v and_o not_o appear_v in_o the_o world_n for_o diverse_a hundred_o of_o year_n but_o this_o i_o shall_v refute_v at_o large_a 5._o large_a cap._n 5._o in_o my_o treatise_n of_o the_o definition_n and_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o this_o present_a unto_o that_o which_o have_v be_v already_o say_v in_o this_o chapter_n concern_v the_o continual_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o church_n and_o other_o argument_n prove_v that_o she_o can_v err_v i_o add_v only_o that_o according_a to_o the_o censure_n of_o s._n augustine_n 8._o augustine_n aug._n l._n de_fw-fr unita_fw-la eccles_n c._n 6._o 7_o 12._o &_o 13._o see_v he_o also_o li._n 20._o the_o civet_n c._n 8._o &_o in_o psal_n 85._o &_o de_fw-la utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la c._n 8._o whosoever_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v overthrow_v do_v rob_v christ_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o inheritance_n buy_v with_o his_o most_o precious_a blood_n yea_o s._n hierome_n go_v further_a and_o aver_v that_o he_o that_o so_o say_v do_v make_v god_n subject_a to_o the_o devil_n and_o a_o poor_a miserable_a christ_n 6._o hier._n count_v lucifer_n cap._n 6._o the_o reason_n be_v because_o this_o assertion_n do_v after_o a_o sort_n bereave_v the_o whole_a incarnation_n life_n and_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n of_o their_o effect_n and_o end_n which_o be_v principal_o to_o find_v a_o church_n and_o kingdom_n in_o this_o world_n which_o shall_v endure_v until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o direct_a man_n in_o all_o truth_n to_o salvation_n wherefore_o whosoever_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o have_v perish_v take_v away_o this_o effect_n and_o prerogative_n from_o his_o incarnation_n life_n and_o passion_n and_o avouch_v that_o at_o sometime_o man_n have_v no_o mean_n leave_v to_o attain_v to_o everlasting_a bliss_n which_o be_v also_o repugnant_a to_o the_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n he_o also_o make_v god_n subject_a to_o the_o devil_n in_o make_v the_o devil_n strong_a than_o christ_n and_o affirm_v he_o to_o have_v overthrow_v christ_n church_n &_o kingdom_n which_o our_o lord_n promise_v shall_v never_o be_v conquer_v as_o i_o have_v above_o declare_v i_o can_v add_v a_o other_o reason_n convince_a the_o church_n not_o to_o have_v err_v take_v out_o of_o tertullian_n 28._o tertul._n lib._n the_o praescr_n cap._n 28._o who_o prove_v it_o because_o error_n common_o bring_v forth_o division_n for_o it_o be_v a_o very_a strange_a matter_n that_o diverse_a nation_n far_o distant_a from_o one_o a_o other_o err_v from_o the_o truth_n shall_v all_o fall_v into_o the_o self_n same_o error_n wherefore_o see_v that_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n in_o all_o place_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o it_o be_v like_a that_o it_o do_v proceed_v of_o tradition_n not_o of_o error_n but_o this_o matter_n be_v already_o sufficient_o prove_v i_o will_v therefore_o conclude_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o error_n touch_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o consequent_o that_o every_o man_n may_v secure_o follow_v concern_v such_o matter_n her_o sentence_n and_o judgement_n and_o this_o be_v that_o high_a beat_a and_o plain_a way_n to_o salvation_n which_o be_v long_o since_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n isaias_n who_o prophesy_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n use_v these_o word_n 8._o isa_n 35._o vers_fw-la 8._o and_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o path_n and_o way_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o holy_a way_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o direct_a that_o fool_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o err_v therein_o for_o no_o such_o way_n can_v be_v show_v if_o this_o be_v deny_v hence_o s._n hierome_n tell_v we_o 6._o hieron_n in_o dialog_n count_v lucifer_n cap._n 6._o that_o we_o ought_v to_o remain_v in_o that_o church_n which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n continue_v till_o this_o day_n this_o also_o be_v that_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o as_o we_o profess_v ourselves_o to_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n for_o in_o these_o word_n we_o do_v not_o only_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o catholic_a church_n on_o earth_n but_o also_o affirm_v that_o we_o believe_v hear_v and_o obey_v the_o same_o wherefore_o in_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n touch_v religion_n let_v we_o listen_v and_o give_v ear_n to_o this_o our_o holy_a mother_n and_o obey_v her_o sentence_n although_o it_o seem_v never_o so_o repugnant_a to_o our_o sense_n and_o reason_n for_o she_o be_v the_o rock_n ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o truth_n let_v we_o believe_v she_o and_o ever_o remain_v in_o her_o sacred_a bosom_n and_o although_o we_o receive_v our_o faith_n and_o be_v instruct_v in_o religion_n by_o some_o particular_a man_n yet_o let_v we_o not_o doubt_v but_o that_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o universal_a church_n for_o they_o who_o instruct_v we_o and_o deliver_v our_o faith_n unto_o we_o do_v this_o as_o the_o officer_n and_o member_n of_o this_o church_n and_o by_o her_o order_n and_o appointment_n neither_o do_v they_o deliver_v the_o say_a doctrine_n unto_o we_o as_o their_o own_o but_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o such_o we_o receive_v it_o and_o have_v sufficient_a motive_n to_o persuade_v we_o that_o this_o be_v true_a wherefore_o like_v as_o the_o action_n of_o a_o member_n of_o a_o man_n body_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o whole_a for_o although_o the_o hand_n strike_v yet_o man_n be_v say_v to_o strike_v etc._n etc._n so_o although_o we_o be_v instruct_v &_o teach_v by_o some_o particular_a member_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o we_o may_v well_o say_v that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o say_a catholic_a and_o universal_a church_n these_o consideration_n be_v so_o forcible_a even_o in_o luther_n understanding_n for_o a_o long_a time_n after_o his_o fall_n from_o we_o that_o he_o find_v his_o conscience_n often_o trouble_v for_o his_o disobedience_n to_o the_o church_n in_o one_o place_n thus_o he_o write_v arbit_fw-la write_v luther_n tom_n 2._o l._n de_fw-fr seru_fw-fr arbit_fw-la during_o more_o than_o ten_o year_n i_o be_v so_o move_v by_o authority_n conscience_n multitude_n of_o martyr_n of_o bishop_n of_o pope_n of_o counsel_n of_o university_n that_o it_o be_v incredible_a that_o this_o troy_n remain_v so_o long_o in_o so_o many_o conflict_n invincible_a can_v never_o be_v conquer_v and_o in_o another_o place_n hominis_fw-la place_n luther_n tom_n 1._o in_o propos_fw-fr suis_fw-fr de_fw-fr viribus_fw-la hominis_fw-la when_o i_o have_v say_v he_o overcome_v all_o argument_n by_o the_o scripture_n this_o one_o that_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v at_o length_n with_o most_o great_a difficulty_n and_o perplexity_n or_o anguish_n by_o christ_n assistance_n i_o hardly_o overcome_v thus_o luther_n i_o add_v also_o that_o our_o other_o our_o see_v hooker_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n of_o eccl._n policy_n §._o 2_o 7._o 9_o bel_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o regiment_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 200._o whitgift_n &_o other_o english_a protestant_n themselves_o dispute_v against_o the_o puritan_n be_v
his_o holy_a spirit_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o whosoever_o be_v infect_v with_o any_o one_o such_o heresy_n be_v void_a of_o all_o spiritual_a life_n and_o in_o state_n of_o damnation_n and_o can_v have_v no_o more_o life_n than_o a_o man_n arm_n cut_v off_o from_o his_o body_n or_o a_o bough_n cut_v from_o a_o tree_n but_o of_o this_o matter_n i_o shall_v entreat_v more_o at_o large_a 4._o chap._n 1._o sect._n 4._o in_o my_o treatise_n of_o the_o definition_n and_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n where_o i_o shall_v prove_v that_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v link_v together_o by_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o therefore_o for_o this_o present_a this_o shall_v suffice_v and_o less_o i_o think_v will_v have_v satisfy_v any_o reasonable_a man_n for_o see_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a rule_n of_o belief_n 4._o ephes_n 4._o vers_fw-la 4._o and_o one_o faith_n according_a as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n among_o christian_n and_o this_o faith_n be_v so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v before_o no_o wiseman_n will_v prescribe_v himself_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o his_o own_o erroneous_a fancy_n and_o neglect_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n who_o truth_n itself_o have_v warrant_v that_o she_o shall_v not_o err_v from_o truth_n chapter_n 7._o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o first_o particular_a ground_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n section_n the_o first_o how_o the_o scripture_n be_v know_v to_o be_v canonical_a the_o supreme_a authority_n and_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o establish_v and_o prove_v it_o may_v well_o in_o this_o place_n be_v demand_v what_o particular_a ground_n decree_n or_o principle_n the_o church_n do_v deliver_v unto_o we_o or_o we_o find_v in_o the_o church_n whereupon_o we_o may_v secure_o build_v our_o faith_n for_o the_o resolution_n of_o this_o question_n i_o have_v affirm_v in_o the_o title_n of_o this_o chapter_n that_o the_o first_o such_o particular_a ground_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o although_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o diverse_a book_n of_o the_o say_v holy_a scripture_n for_o most_o of_o they_o by_o we_o all_o be_v confess_v to_o be_v canonical_a yet_o much_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o we_o concern_v the_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o know_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o every_o parcel_n thereof_o to_o be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o who_o be_v to_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o these_o divine_a volume_n wherefore_o these_o point_n be_v brief_o to_o be_v handle_v and_o discuss_v how_o then_o do_v we_o know_v that_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v canonical_a how_o can_v we_o certain_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n write_v the_o new_a what_o proof_n likewise_o have_v we_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o no_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v be_v in_o time_n past_o corrupt_a or_o deprave_a i_o answer_v in_o few_o word_n that_o all_o this_o be_v infallible_o know_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o authority_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o have_v adjudge_v all_o such_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a and_o as_o canonical_a receive_v they_o and_o deliver_v they_o to_o her_o child_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o scripture_n before_o the_o definition_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n be_v true_a and_o contain_v the_o certain_a and_o sincere_a word_n of_o god_n but_o this_o only_o i_o say_v that_o this_o truth_n and_o authority_n be_v first_o infallible_o know_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o church_n who_o adjudge_v and_o censure_v they_o to_o be_v as_o they_o be_v and_o as_o such_o command_v all_o christian_n to_o esteem_v and_o reverence_v they_o neither_o be_v this_o any_o way_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o this_o notwithstanding_o we_o confess_v that_o the_o say_a scripture_n be_v of_o far_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o church_n or_o her_o definition_n be_v which_o be_v manifest_a because_o although_o the_o holy_a ghost_n assist_v and_o direct_v both_o the_o writer_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o church_n yet_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o have_v assist_v and_o direct_v the_o first_o after_o a_o far_o more_o excellent_a manner_n than_o he_o do_v the_o second_o because_o his_o assistance_n and_o direction_n in_o pen_v those_o sacred_a book_n be_v such_o that_o every_o sentence_n in_o they_o contain_v be_v of_o most_o certain_a verity_n but_o his_o assistance_n unto_o the_o church_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o a_o general_a council_n or_o otherwise_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n make_v only_o that_o which_o the_o say_a council_n or_o bishop_n intend_v to_o define_v of_o such_o a_o infallible_a truth_n wherefore_o then_o do_v we_o prove_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v canonical_a by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n sure_o for_o no_o other_o reason_n then_o because_o the_o church_n be_v better_a know_v unto_o we_o then_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o church_n have_v always_o be_v as_o i_o will_v prove_v hereafter_o most_o visible_a and_o apparent_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n every_o man_n also_o before_o that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v &_o before_o that_o it_o be_v general_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n may_v have_v know_v the_o church_n for_o she_o be_v before_o any_o part_n of_o it_o be_v pen_v and_o consequent_o by_o her_o infallible_a judgement_n every_o one_o may_v with_o far_o more_o ease_n and_o certainty_n have_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o such_o book_n then_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n or_o industry_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v although_o the_o church_n make_v not_o scripture_n yet_o of_o she_o we_o learn_v most_o certain_o which_o be_v scripture_n and_o this_o be_v no_o more_o disgrace_n unto_o scripture_n than_o it_o be_v unto_o christ_n that_o the_o apostle_n give_v testimony_n of_o he_o because_o they_o be_v better_o know_v than_o he_o i_o add_v also_o that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o who_o above_o all_o other_o reprehend_v this_o our_o assertion_n take_v upon_o himself_o as_o great_a authority_n over_o scripture_n as_o we_o give_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n 1_o see_v part_n second_o chap._n 5._o sect._n 1_o for_o every_o new_a sectary_n out_o of_o his_o own_o fancy_n judge_v this_o to_o be_v scripture_n that_o to_o be_v none_o etc._n etc._n which_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o every_o man_n judgement_n far_o more_o absurd_a this_o assertion_n be_v thus_o explicate_v let_v we_o now_o brief_o prove_v the_o same_o and_o first_o because_o we_o can_v assign_v no_o other_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o may_v say_v that_o we_o certain_o know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v canonical_a but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o concern_v the_o old_a testament_n although_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o authority_n thereof_o be_v first_o partly_o approve_v by_o miracle_n partly_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o prophet_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o day_n yet_o how_o do_v we_o now_o infallible_o know_v that_o it_o be_v so_o approve_v and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o self_n same_o now_o that_o be_v then_o approve_v but_o by_o the_o relation_n tradition_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n but_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o demand_v who_o have_v receive_v it_o into_o the_o canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n what_o miracle_n have_v be_v wrought_v to_o prove_v it_o canonical_a who_o do_v assure_v we_o that_o it_o be_v pen_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o since_o their_o day_n it_o have_v not_o be_v corrupt_v very_o the_o church_n only_o resolve_v we_o of_o all_o these_o question_n and_o tell_v we_o with_o assurance_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o say_v new_a testament_n be_v write_v by_o the_o say_v sacred_a author_n inspire_v and_o direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o ever_o since_o their_o day_n it_o have_v be_v preserve_v in_o her_o sacred_a bosom_n without_o corruption_n and_o no_o other_o answer_n have_v any_o probability_n of_o truth_n and_o sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v a_o reasonable_a man_n understanding_n can_v be_v make_v this_o may_v also_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o continual_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o it_o be_v she_o do_v that_o the_o four_o gospel_n of_o s._n mathewe_n mark_v luke_n and_o john_n 2._o see_v part_n 2_o chap._n 5._o sect._n 2._o be_v receive_v and_o the_o gospel_n call_v of_o nicodemus_n with_o other_o reject_v she_o have_v likewise_o now_o receive_v as_o canonical_a diverse_a book_n in_o time_n pass_v of_o
the_o truth_n of_o christian_a discipline_n and_o faith_n be_v there_o we_o shall_v find_v also_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n &_o exposition_n &_o all_o christian_a tradition_n unto_o these_o authority_n i_o add_v that_o the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o the_o danger_n of_o misinterpret_v they_o be_v presuppose_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o god_n almighty_a shall_v prescribe_v some_o certain_a rule_n which_o every_o man_n may_v follow_v without_o danger_n of_o error_n in_o understand_v they_o otherwise_o dissension_n may_v have_v rise_v concern_v their_o true_a sense_n and_o consequent_o concern_v diverse_a article_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o every_o man_n may_v &_o will_v have_v expound_v they_o according_a to_o his_o own_o fancy_n although_o never_o so_o false_a and_o erroneous_a and_o what_o judge_n can_v we_o imagine_v he_o to_o have_v appoint_v but_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v above_o he_o have_v warrant_v from_o error_n who_o authority_n he_o have_v make_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o belief_n who_o have_v the_o custody_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o from_o who_o we_o receive_v they_o and_o infallible_o know_v they_o to_o contain_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n this_o final_o the_o practice_n itself_o of_o the_o church_n have_v confirm_v for_o whensoever_o any_o controversy_n have_v rise_v touch_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n she_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n in_o she_o preserve_v and_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n unto_o she_o deliver_v together_o with_o the_o letter_n have_v define_v the_o truth_n and_o decide_v the_o same_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o condemnation_n all_o heretic_n together_o with_o their_o false_a translation_n and_o erroneous_a exposition_n of_o the_o say_a scripture_n and_o whosoever_o forsake_v this_o rule_n fall_v present_o into_o a_o labyrinth_n &_o vast_a sea_n of_o difficulty_n and_o be_v always_o perplex_v and_o inconstant_a in_o his_o belief_n contrariwise_o whosoever_o embrace_v this_o rule_n build_v upon_o a_o firm_a rock_n wherefore_o i_o say_v with_o the_o apostle_n whosoever_o shall_v follow_v this_o rule_n 16._o galat._n 6._o vers_fw-la 16._o peace_n upon_o they_o and_o mercy_n now_o let_v we_o in_o the_o last_o place_n confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o principal_a assertion_n concern_v the_o letter_n and_o interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n yea_o concern_v the_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_n doctrine_n by_o unwriten_a tradition_n preserve_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o lutheran_n adversary_n of_o wittenberg_n for_o they_o do_v not_o only_o confess_v 32._o harm_n of_o confess_v sect_n 10._o pag._n 332._o 333._o confession_n wittenb_n artic_a 32._o the_o church_n to_o have_v authority_n to_o bear_v witness_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o interpret_v the_o same_o but_o also_o affirm_v that_o she_o have_v receive_v from_o her_o husband_n christ_n a_o certain_a rule_n to_o wit_n the_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a preach_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n from_o heaven_n according_a unto_o the_o which_o she_o be_v bind_v to_o interpret_v those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v obscure_a and_o to_o judge_v of_o doctrine_n this_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n second_o field_n book_n 4._o ca._n 19_o &_o 20._o §._o the_o second_o field_n also_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o church_n a_o rule_n of_o faith_n descend_v by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n according_a unto_o which_o he_o will_v have_v the_o scripture_n expound_v i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o thus_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v a_o most_o sure_a and_o infallible_a ground_n of_o faith_n for_o by_o this_o mean_n i_o mean_v by_o the_o divine_a censure_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n we_o be_v assure_v that_o both_o the_o letter_n and_o sense_n be_v of_o divine_a authority_n whereas_o the_o particular_a or_o private_a approbation_n of_o the_o letter_n or_o interpretation_n or_o it_o make_v by_o any_o private_a man_n be_v subject_a to_o error_n can_v possible_o yield_v we_o any_o such_o assurance_n section_n the_o sixth_o a_o objection_n against_o the_o premise_n be_v answer_v and_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o last_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v discuss_v but_o here_o occur_v a_o difficulty_n of_o no_o small_a moment_n to_o be_v resolve_v for_o in_o this_o chapter_n i_o have_v affirm_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o their_o true_a interpretation_n to_o he_o know_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o before_o i_o prove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n wherefore_o 7._o field_n book_n 4._o cap._n 7._o it_o may_v seem_v that_o i_o have_v make_v a_o circle_n or_o as_o m._n field_n call_v it_o a_o circulation_n the_o full_a solution_n of_o this_o objection_n depend_v of_o the_o resolution_n of_o a_o question_n which_o to_o some_o appear_v very_o intricate_a and_o hard_a to_o wit_n unto_o what_o we_o last_o resolve_v our_o faith_n whether_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o to_o some_o humane_a motive_n and_o therefore_o this_o must_v first_o be_v discuss_v before_o the_o other_o can_v be_v answer_v and_o in_o very_a deed_n although_o all_o catholic_a divine_n be_v of_o one_o consent_n and_o hold_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o belief_n be_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n which_o have_v reveal_v such_o mystery_n as_o we_o believe_v yet_o concern_v the_o last_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v a_o school_n question_n and_o not_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n i_o find_v among_o they_o two_o opinion_n the_o follower_n of_o the_o first_o declare_v the_o matter_n thus_o fiist_o say_v they_o every_o man_n be_v induce_v to_o believe_v christian_a religion_n and_o to_o accept_v of_o it_o as_o true_a by_o certain_a humane_a and_o prudent_a motive_n or_o reason_n which_o persuade_v he_o that_o such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o wisdom_n be_v credible_a and_o worthy_a of_o belief_n such_o motive_n among_o other_o be_v these_o which_o follow_v first_o that_o almost_o all_o nation_n and_o in_o they_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o man_n of_o great_a authority_n principal_a wit_n excellent_a virtue_n and_o profound_a learning_n have_v so_o beleeeve_v second_o that_o innumerable_a multitude_n of_o people_n of_o all_o sort_n sex_n and_o age_n who_o be_v most_o desirous_a to_o please_v god_n and_o know_v true_a religion_n and_o be_v exemplar_n or_o pattern_n of_o probity_n and_o sanctity_n have_v so_o earnest_o embrace_v it_o that_o they_o doubt_v not_o to_o prefer_v the_o profession_n of_o it_o before_o good_n liberty_n fame_n and_o life_n itself_o yea_o that_o they_o choose_v rather_o to_o loose_v all_o these_o and_o endure_v withal_o most_o cruel_a torment_n then_o to_o depart_v from_o it_o three_o that_o it_o do_v as_o it_o be_v miraculous_o and_o by_o some_o divine_a mean_n change_v man_n although_o habituate_v in_o vice_n upon_o the_o sudden_a to_o be_v virtuous_a four_o that_o the_o propagation_n of_o it_o have_v be_v by_o divine_a power_n which_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o a_o few_o unlearned_a and_o weak_a fisherman_n teach_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v contrary_a to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o above_o all_o reason_n have_v overcome_v not_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n but_o by_o preach_v and_o suffer_v the_o wise_a most_o eloquent_a most_o noble_a and_o most_o potent_a man_n of_o the_o world_n final_o that_o this_o religion_n have_v be_v confirm_v by_o a_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o divine_a miracle_n record_v by_o famous_a author_n of_o all_o age_n of_o which_o if_o one_o only_o be_v confess_v true_a christian_a religion_n can_v be_v false_a by_o these_o and_o other_o such_o like_a reason_n and_o argument_n which_o i_o have_v rehearse_v before_o according_a to_o the_o psalm_n the_o testimony_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v first_o make_v unto_o well_o dispose_v people_n over_o or_o exceed_v credible_a but_o although_o these_o of_o themselves_o may_v well_o make_v we_o accept_v and_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o christian_a religion_n by_o a_o natural_a and_o humane_a kind_n of_o belief_n such_o as_o the_o devil_n himself_o have_v and_o be_v also_o in_o heretic_n concern_v such_o article_n which_o they_o true_o believe_v yet_o can_v they_o not_o alone_o cause_n in_o we_o a_o act_n of_o supernatural_a faith_n for_o this_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v before_o be_v supernatural_a can_v not_o proceed_v from_o a_o natural_a cause_n without_o some_o supernatural_a help_n and_o what_o then_o be_v do_v after_o this_o persuasion_n very_o god_n almighty_a yield_v eth_z we_o his_o supernatural_a help_n and_o impart_v unto_o our_o soul_n a_o divine_a light_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o our_o understanding_n be_v make_v more_o capable_a of_o thing_n so_o high_a
in_o li._n de_fw-fr scriptor_n eccl._n in_o joan._n s._n hierome_n testify_v and_o that_o all_o be_v not_o by_o he_o record_v it_o be_v manifest_a because_o those_o speech_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v with_o his_o apostle_n during_o the_o forty_o day_n between_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n be_v almost_o altogether_o omit_v neither_o do_v he_o write_v this_o gospel_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n but_o many_o year_n after_o to_o wit_n about_o threescore_o and_o six_o year_n after_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n and_o like_v as_o s._n john_n so_o do_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n leave_v unto_o we_o such_o parcel_n of_o scripture_n as_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o they_o some_o extraordinary_a occasion_n move_v they_o thereunto_o as_o i_o can_v easy_o declare_v and_o prove_v 58._o see_n euse_n hist_o li._n 3._o chrisost_n hom_n 1._o in_o mat._n epipha_n haeres_fw-la 51._o baronius_n to_o 1._o au_o 45._o et_fw-la 58._o out_o of_o eusebius_n saint_n hierome_n and_o other_o i_o know_v that_o first_o that_o field_n book_n 4._o cap._n 20._o §_o for_o first_o field_n make_v show_v as_o though_o it_o be_v a_o plain_a matter_n that_o the_o evangelist_n in_o their_o gospel_n s._n luke_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o s._n john_n in_o the_o apocalypse_n mean_v to_o deliver_v a_o perfect_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o direction_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o what_o reason_n he_o bring_v for_o it_o of_o any_o moment_n i_o can_v see_v and_o beside_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o one_o of_o they_o intend_v to_o set_v down_o all_o because_o no_o one_o of_o they_o have_v so_o do_v wherefore_o if_o they_o have_v set_v down_o all_o as_o he_o affirm_v either_o it_o have_v proceed_v from_o some_o common_a deliberation_n or_o consultation_n have_v among_o themselves_o in_o which_o they_o determine_v what_o every_o one_o shall_v rehearse_v or_o else_o from_o the_o disposition_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o inspire_v they_o to_o write_v not_o the_o first_o because_o no_o man_n ever_o make_v mention_n of_o such_o a_o deliberation_n or_o consultation_n and_o moreover_o they_o write_v upon_o diverse_a occasion_n in_o diverse_a country_n and_o at_o diverse_a time_n as_o ecclesiastical_a history_n testify_v not_o the_o second_o because_o field_n himself_o grant_v that_o something_o be_v want_v in_o these_o book_n which_o the_o church_n believe_v which_o will_v not_o have_v be_v if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v intend_v that_o all_o shall_v have_v be_v set_v down_o for_o he_o add_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v occasionallie_o write_v yet_o so_o say_v he_o as_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n all_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o church_n believe_v not_o be_v find_v in_o the_o other_o part_n scripture_n purpose_o write_v be_v most_o clear_o and_o at_o large_a deliver_v in_o these_o epistle_n mark_v well_o gentle_a reader_n this_o doctrine_n he_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n in_o the_o gospel_n act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n mean_v to_o deliver_v a_o perfect_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n &_o direction_n of_o christian_a faith_n now_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o church_n believe_v some_o thing_n which_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o apostolical_a epistle_n not_o be_v find_v in_o the_o other_o part_n of_o scripture_n purposed_o write_v of_o which_o i_o infer_v both_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n intend_v not_o that_o the_o penner_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n shall_v deliver_v a_o perfect_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o also_o that_o he_o think_v the_o writer_n of_o these_o book_n to_o have_v miss_v of_o their_o intend_a purpose_n very_o this_o last_o point_n seem_v to_o i_o no_o very_o sound_a doctrine_n and_o beside_o how_o will_v m._n field_n prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o epistle_n supply_v all_o this_o want_n especial_o see_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n in_o the_o other_o book_n although_o intend_v to_o write_v all_o yet_o in_o his_o opinion_n omit_v something_o and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n intend_v no_o such_o matter_n but_o write_v they_o as_o he_o say_v occasional_o wherefore_o there_o be_v far_o great_a likelihood_n that_o these_o omit_v something_o than_o they_o further_o one_o apostolical_a epistle_n at_o the_o least_o to_o the_o laodician_n have_v perish_v cor._n coloss_n 4.16_o see_v 1._o cor._n 5_o 9_o chrisost_n hom_n 9_o in_o math._n et_fw-fr homil_n 7._o in_o 1._o cor._n of_o which_o be_v mention_n in_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o colossian_n and_o who_o can_v absolute_o say_v that_o nothing_o necessary_a be_v contain_v in_o it_o which_o be_v not_o in_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n final_o field_n himself_o confess_v some_o unwritten_a tradition_n as_o i_o will_v declare_v in_o the_o next_o section_n what_o then_o do_v the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n express_o set_v down_o in_o those_o their_o monument_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n a_o part_n only_o without_o all_o doubt_n of_o the_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a belief_n in_o which_o part_n they_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v the_o supreme_a and_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o who_o the_o rest_n be_v to_o be_v learn_v and_o to_o who_o custody_n they_o commit_v their_o say_a monument_n so_o that_o the_o whole_a sum_n or_o depositum_fw-la have_v be_v keep_v and_o preserve_v in_o the_o church_n not_o all_o &_o only_o in_o express_v term_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o the_o whole_a by_o tradition_n &_o a_o part_n of_o that_o whole_a also_o by_o writing_n another_o part_n by_o only_a tradition_n by_o which_o likewise_o the_o say_a scripture_n itself_o come_v to_o our_o hand_n and_o after_o this_o sort_n the_o whole_a corpse_n of_o christian_a religion_n without_o any_o alteration_n descend_v unto_o us._n this_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v already_o say_v concern_v the_o true_a sense_n &_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 5._o chap._n 7._o sect_n 5._o for_o as_o i_o have_v show_v the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v interpret_v according_a to_o the_o analogy_n or_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o that_o belief_n which_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n have_v receive_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n wherefore_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o the_o whole_a direction_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n the_o perfect_a and_o full_a direction_n of_o the_o say_a letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n may_v have_v remain_v sound_a and_o entire_a by_o tradition_n although_o no_o such_o letter_n have_v be_v publish_v but_o let_v we_o confirm_v this_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n 4._o irenae_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o among_o the_o rest_n s_o irenaeus_n discourse_v thus_o what_o say_v he_o if_o neither_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v we_o scripture_n aught_o we_o not_o to_o follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o deliver_v unto_o those_o who_o they_o commit_v church_n unto_o which_o order_n many_o barbarous_a nation_n believe_v in_o christ_n assent_v without_o letter_n or_o ink_n that_o be_v without_o any_o write_a word_n of_o god_n have_v salvation_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o diligent_o keep_v the_o ancient_a tradition_n hitherto_o s._n irenaeus_n and_o note_v well_o that_o he_o affirm_v some_o to_o have_v be_v christian_n without_o any_o scripture_n guide_v only_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n he_o tell_v we_o moreover_o that_o by_o this_o order_n of_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n all_o heretic_n be_v convince_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o catholic_n shut_v up_o their_o ear_n assoon_o as_o they_o hear_v they_o utter_v any_o thing_n repugnant_a to_o the_o say_a order_n final_o he_o add_v that_o all_o that_o be_v desirous_a to_o hear_v the_o truth_n may_v see_v in_o the_o church_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n make_v manifest_a through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o we_o can_v number_v those_o say_v he_o who_o be_v institute_v bishop_n in_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n even_o unto_o we_o who_o teach_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o man_n heretic_n dream_v of_o thus_o far_o s._n irenaeus_n 21_o tertul._n de_fw-fr praescrip_n cap._n 19_o 20._o 21_o who_o suffer_v martyrdom_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 205._o tertullian_n also_o affirm_v that_o by_o this_o rule_n of_o tradition_n or_o prescription_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n heretic_n be_v to_o be_v convince_v and_o hence_o it_o proceed_v that_o the_o apostle_n with_o
we_o that_o in_o it_o the_o bishop_n be_v assemble_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n anasta_fw-la ghost_n ciril_n lib._n de_fw-fr trinita_fw-la et_fw-fr dialog_n cum_fw-la hermia_n et_fw-la epi._n ad_fw-la anasta_fw-la s._n ciril_n of_o alexandria_n term_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o same_o council_n a_o divine_a and_o most_o holy_a oracle_n also_o the_o strong_a and_o invincible_a foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o a_o faith_n define_v by_o divine_a instinct_n aug._n instinct_n leo_fw-la epistol_n 53._o ad_fw-la anatho_n et_fw-fr 54._o ad_fw-la martian_a et_fw-fr 78_o ad_fw-la leonem_fw-la aug._n s._n leo_n affirm_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n synod_n ghost_n constan_n epist_n ad_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la de_fw-la habita_fw-la nicaenae_fw-la synod_n receive_v say_v constantine_n the_o great_a of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a with_o willing_a mind_n this_o decree_n as_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o a_o precept_n in_o very_a deed_n send_v from_o heaven_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o saint_n must_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o divine_a wil._n 10._o wil._n gregor_n li._n 1._o epist_n 24._o et_fw-la lib._n 2._o indict_v 11_o epist_n 10._o s._n gregory_n say_v he_o honour_v the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n as_o the_o four_o gospel_n 5._o gospel_n justin_n authent_fw-fr collat_n 9_o de_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la titulis_fw-la cap._n 1._o see_v ruffinus_n in_o hist_o lib._n 1._o cap._n 5._o we_o receive_v their_o decree_n of_o faith_n say_v justinian_n the_o emperor_n more_o ancient_a than_o he_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n ephesinam_fw-la scripture_n caelestinus_n epist_n ad_fw-la synod_n ephesinam_fw-la caelestinus_n the_o pope_n affirm_v that_o he_o believe_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o this_o prerogative_n of_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n be_v also_o gather_v out_o of_o those_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n above_o rehearse_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n be_v direct_v in_o all_o truth_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o which_o i_o join_v this_o take_v out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_n assemble_v together_o in_o the_o first_o council_n hold_v at_o jerusalem_n in_o their_o decision_n of_o the_o matter_n then_o in_o controversy_n use_v this_o stile_n 28._o act._n 15._o verse_n 28._o it_o have_v seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o etc._n etc._n give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o in_o holy_a counsel_n the_o resolution_n of_o controversy_n and_o other_o decree_n proceed_v jointe_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o father_n assemble_v and_o that_o he_o together_o with_o they_o propound_v unto_o we_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v decree_v and_o because_o all_o general_a counsel_n ever_o since_o have_v have_v the_o same_o direction_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o have_v likewise_o ever_o use_v the_o same_o kind_n of_o stile_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o say_v first_o council_n hold_v by_o the_o apostle_n at_o jerusalem_n we_o be_v sufficient_o inform_v in_o the_o say_a history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o which_o s._n luke_n record_v 4._o act._n 15_o 41._o chap._n 16_o 4._o that_o when_o s._n paul_n and_o silas_n pass_v through_o the_o city_n they_o deliver_v unto_o the_o faithful_a the_o precept_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o ancient_n that_o be_v decree_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o command_v they_o to_o keep_v they_o and_o like_v as_o all_o faithful_a christian_n embrace_v those_o precept_n so_o ever_o since_o all_o catholic_n have_v embrace_v the_o creed_n and_o decree_n of_o general_a counsel_n build_v therein_o not_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n subject_a to_o error_n but_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o man_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v chief_a precedent_n in_o all_o such_o general_a counsel_n wherefore_o although_o every_o particular_a man_n assemble_v in_o the_o council_n except_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v err_v in_o his_o private_a opinion_n yet_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o in_o such_o a_o council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n they_o have_v not_o err_v and_o upon_o this_o every_o christian_n may_v secure_o build_v his_o faith_n and_o salvation_n hence_o the_o father_n teach_v that_o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o die_v then_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o decree_n of_o general_a counsel_n 32._o counsel_n ambros_n epist_n 32._o i_o follow_v say_v s._n ambrose_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n from_o which_o neither_o death_n nor_o sword_n shall_v separate_v i_o sinodis_fw-la i_o hieron_n count_n lucif_n hilla_n in_o fine_a lib._n de_fw-fr sinodis_fw-la s._n athanasius_n s._n hilary_n and_o s._n eusebius_n endure_v banishment_n rather_o than_o they_o will_v contrary_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o same_o council_n secutione_fw-la council_n victor_n in_o li._n de_fw-fr vandalica_fw-la per_fw-la secutione_fw-la victor_n affricanus_fw-la relate_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o diverse_a who_o suffer_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n moreover_o if_o we_o make_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_a council_n subject_n to_o falsehood_n we_o must_v needs_o condemn_v all_o such_o counsel_n even_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o best_a of_o a_o intolerable_a error_n in_o this_o that_o they_o propound_v thing_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o which_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a whether_o they_o be_v true_a or_o false_a and_o make_v new_a creed_n or_o form_n of_o faith_n or_o at_o the_o least_o add_v some_o sentence_n to_o the_o old_a which_o they_o command_v all_o christian_n to_o embrace_v as_o part_v of_o their_o belief_n for_o how_o can_v they_o do_v this_o if_o they_o can_v have_v err_v and_o have_v propound_v falsehood_n unto_o which_o i_o may_v also_o add_v that_o if_o we_o bereave_v such_o definition_n of_o divine_a truth_n the_o condemnation_n of_o all_o heresy_n condemn_v in_o ancient_a time_n may_v be_v call_v in_o question_n and_o doubt_n may_v be_v make_v whether_o they_o be_v lawful_o and_o just_o condemn_v or_o no_o and_o so_o we_o shall_v not_o only_o open_v the_o way_n to_o all_o dissension_n and_o division_n in_o the_o church_n but_o also_o bereave_v ourselves_o of_o a_o principal_a mean_n for_o the_o condemnation_n of_o such_o new_a trinitarian_n 42._o see_v zauchius_n in_o the_o epistle_n before_o his_o confession_n beza_n volumine_fw-la 3._o pa._n 190._o 195._o hooker_n book_n 5._o §_o 42._o arian_n nestorian_n and_o eutichian_o as_o have_v in_o this_o last_o age_n spring_v up_o out_o of_o our_o adversary_n euangellical_a or_o rather_o pseudo-evangellical_a doctrine_n this_o force_a beza_n dispute_v against_o such_o heretic_n to_o plead_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n 13._o chalcedon_n beza_n epist_n the●log_n 81_o p._n 334._o 335._o zauchius_n in_o his_o epistle_n before_o his_o confession_n pag._n 12._o 13._o than_o which_o say_v he_o the_o sun_n never_o behold_v any_o thing_n more_o holy_a and_o excellent_a from_o the_o apostle_n day_n he_o add_v that_o although_o all_o use_n of_o new_a word_n be_v diligent_o to_o be_v avoid_v yet_o say_v he_o i_o so_o define_v that_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o essence_n and_o hipostasis_n be_v take_v away_o what_o word_n soever_o thou_o use_v and_o the_o word_n consubstantial_a being_n abrogate_a which_o word_n be_v establish_v in_o the_o say_a counsel_n the_o deceit_n and_o error_n of_o these_o arian_n and_o trinitarian_n can_v hardly_o or_o not_o at_o all_o be_v discover_v or_o their_o error_n so_o clear_o confute_v i_o deny_v also_o that_o the_o word_n nature_n propriety_n hipostatical_a union_n etc._n etc._n be_v take_v away_o that_o the_o blasphemy_n of_o nestorius_n and_o eutiches_n can_v well_o be_v refell_v hitherto_o beza_n hence_o also_o zanchius_n a_o protestant_n of_o no_o small_a fame_n write_v thus_o and_o because_o heretic_n when_o they_o dare_v not_o simple_o deny_v these_o foundation_n be_v ever_o wont_a to_o wrest_v and_o yet_o do_v wrest_v and_o wring_v the_o same_o for_o the_o most_o part_n by_o false_a interpretation_n to_o their_o own_o heresy_n therefore_o that_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v discern_v from_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n we_o must_v understand_v and_o expound_v those_o principle_n and_o chief_a point_n of_o doctrine_n in_o no_o other_o sense_n then_o as_o the_o ancient_a church_n agreeable_o to_o the_o scripture_n by_o common_a consent_n special_o in_o the_o best_a approve_a counsel_n expound_v they_o for_o what_o to_o say_v something_o for_o example_n sake_n can_v be_v more_o firm_a certain_a and_o manifest_o speak_v for_o the_o article_n in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n than_o those_o
10._o pag._n 570._o andraeas_n fricius_n a_o learned_a protestant_n of_o polonia_n and_o that_o he_o hold_v himself_o to_o be_v supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n all_o his_o 13._o his_o see_v l._n 12._o epi._n 32._o de_fw-la priviligio_fw-la concessomo_fw-la nasterio_fw-la s._n medardi_fw-la in_o psal_n 5._o epist_n 38._o indict_v 13._o book_n and_o action_n abundant_o testify_v and_o of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n in_o particular_a thus_o he_o write_v cusanum_fw-la write_v lib._n 7._o epist_n 63._o ad_fw-la joan._n sirrah_n cusanum_fw-la of_o the_o seat_n of_o constantinople_n who_o can_v doubt_v but_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostolic_a see_n which_o both_o my_o lord_n the_o most_o holy_a emperor_n and_o my_o brother_n eusebius_n bishop_n of_o the_o same_o city_n of_o constantinople_n profess_v and_o this_o be_v the_o common_a catholic_a doctrine_n touch_v the_o supreamacie_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n section_n the_o second_o the_o aforesaid_a doctrine_n be_v prove_v if_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o bring_v forth_o all_o the_o argument_n which_o occur_v and_o be_v common_o use_v by_o catholic_a author_n convince_a the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v here_o say_v this_o treatise_n will_v rise_v to_o a_o great_a volume_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o my_o intent_n wherefore_o i_o will_v only_o touch_v the_o principal_a and_o those_o very_o brief_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o first_o find_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o the_o first_o sight_n of_o s._n peter_n change_v his_o name_n from_o simon_n to_o cephas_n or_o peter_n for_o this_o holy_a apostle_n be_v bring_v by_o s._n andrew_n his_o brother_n unto_o christ_n he_o look_v upon_o he_o say_v s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n say_v galatas_fw-la joh._n 1_o 42._o hier._n in_o c._n 2._o epist_n ad_fw-la galatas_fw-la thou_o be_v simon_n the_o son_n of_o jona_n thou_o shall_v be_v call_v cephas_n which_o word_n in_o the_o siriack_a tongue_n as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o s._n hierom_n as_o also_o peter_n in_o the_o greek_a signify_v a_o rock_n wherefore_o then_o do_v christ_n change_v this_o apostle_n name_n more_o than_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o although_o he_o call_v s._n james_n and_o s._n john_n boanerges_n 3._o mark_n 3._o yet_o he_o alter_v not_o their_o former_a name_n but_o give_v they_o a_o kind_n of_o surname_n and_o therefore_o by_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n &_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o be_v always_o call_v by_o their_o first_o name_n james_n &_o john_n but_o s._n peter_n be_v common_o call_v both_o by_o the_o evangelist_n s._n paul_n joan._n galat._n 2._o chrisost_n in_o 1._o cap._n joan._n and_o the_o whole_a church_n peter_n &_o cephas_n or_o a_o rock_n which_o as_o s._n john_n chrisostome_n very_o well_o note_v argue_v that_o some_o great_a privilege_n be_v grant_v to_o s._n peter_n above_o other_o for_o so_o god_n for_o some_o extraordinary_a and_o great_a cause_n change_v the_o name_n of_o abram_n into_o abraham_n and_o of_o jacob_n into_o israel_n but_o what_o be_v this_o privilege_n very_o the_o name_n itself_o impose_v upon_o s._n peter_n give_v we_o notice_n what_o it_o be_v for_o see_v that_o christ_n communicate_v unto_o he_o one_o of_o his_o own_o name_n to_o wit_n the_o name_n of_o a_o rock_n or_o stone_n which_o be_v often_o time_n attribute_v unto_o himself_o in_o holy_a write_v etc._n isa_n 8._o et_fw-la 28._o daniel_n 2._o psal_n 117._o mat._n 21._o rom._n 9_o 1._o cor._n 10._o ephe._n 2.1_o peter_n 2._o etc._n etc._n he_o also_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o be_v to_o communicate_v unto_o he_o the_o high_a office_n under_o himself_o and_o that_o like_a as_o he_o himself_o be_v the_o principal_a rock_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n so_o this_o holy_a apostle_n be_v to_o be_v by_o participation_n a_o secondary_a stone_n place_v next_o unto_o himself_o in_o the_o build_n of_o the_o same_o and_o through_o his_o prayer_n and_o warrant_n to_o be_v make_v a_o pillar_n of_o truth_n not_o to_o be_v shake_v with_o any_o falsehood_n nor_o overthrow_v by_o all_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n basil_n and_o s._n leo_n as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o but_o that_o the_o force_n of_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n against_o the_o new_a sectary_n may_v the_o better_o be_v perceive_v let_v we_o join_v another_o unto_o it_o more_o strongelie_o confirm_v the_o same_o truth_n and_o plain_o open_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o former_a for_o after_o that_o this_o bless_a apostle_n have_v confess_v our_o saviour_n to_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n our_o redeemer_n reply_v unto_o he_o 18.19_o mat._n 16._o v._n 18.19_o use_v these_o word_n and_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o that_o thou_o be_v peter_n or_o a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o i_o will_v give_v to_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v also_o bind_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v in_o the_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v loose_v also_o in_o the_o heaven_n loe_o a_o plain_a promise_n make_v unto_o s._n peter_n both_o that_o on_o he_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v and_o consequent_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v make_v the_o principal_a foundation_n of_o the_o same_o next_o unto_o christ_n and_o also_o that_o as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o chief_a pastor_n of_o his_o flock_n he_o shall_v receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o hence_o proceed_v those_o word_n of_o s._n hierome_n concern_v the_o first_o prerogative_n quirinun_n hieron_n lib._n 1._o contra_fw-la pelag._n cyprian_n epistol_n ad_fw-la quirinun_n peter_n be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n upon_o who_o the_o church_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v strong_o and_o firm_o found_v which_o be_v neither_o shake_v by_o the_o fury_n of_o any_o flood_n nor_o by_o any_o tempest_n saint_n cyprian_n that_o holy_a martyr_n more_o ancient_a than_o saint_n hierome_n tell_v we_o that_o our_o lord_n do_v choose_v peter_n the_o chief_a and_o upon_o he_o build_v his_o church_n which_o word_n of_o his_o be_v allege_v and_o approve_v by_o saint_n augustine_n in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la cap._n 1._o to_o these_o i_o add_v s._n basil_n and_o s._n epiphanius_n of_o who_o the_o first_o avouch_v poenitentia_fw-la avouch_v basil_n li._n 2._o in_o eunom_n et_fw-la homilia_fw-la 19_o quae_fw-la est_fw-la ulti_fw-la de_fw-fr poenitentia_fw-la that_o saint_n peter_n for_o the_o excellency_n of_o his_o faith_n receive_v upon_o he_o the_o edifice_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o in_o another_o place_n he_o call_v he_o the_o rock_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o other_o write_v anchor_n write_v epiphan_n in_o anchor_n that_o our_o lord_n appoint_v peter_n the_o first_o or_o chief_a of_o his_o apostle_n a_o firm_a rock_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v the_o like_a sentence_n be_v find_v in_o suae_fw-la in_o leo_fw-la ser_n 2._o in_o anivers_n assumptio_fw-la suae_fw-la s._n leo_n disputat_fw-la leo_n nazian●_n de_fw-fr mother_n seruamd_a in_o disputat_fw-la s._n gregory_n nazianzene_n math._n nazianzene_n chrisost_n homil_n 55._o in_o math._n s._n chrisostome_n 47._o chrisostome_n ambros_n serm_n 47._o s._n ambrose_n and_o other_o yea_o that_o the_o father_n gather_v this_o out_o of_o the_o say_a word_n of_o our_o lord_n it_o be_v grant_v by_o 6._o by_o calu._n li._n 4._o instit_fw-la ca._n 6._o §_o 6._o caluin_n and_o 277._o and_o dan._n in_o respon_n ad_fw-la bellar._n disput_fw-la part_n 1._o p._n 277._o danaeus_n that_o he_o also_o have_v a_o second_o prerogative_n promise_v he_o in_o the_o same_o word_n of_o receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o receive_v they_o with_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o subjection_n to_o peter_n the_o father_n in_o like_a sort_n even_o as_o confident_o testify_v and_o first_o this_o be_v affirm_v by_o s._n cyprian_n in_o these_o word_n 73._o word_n cyprian_n epist_n 73._o to_o peter_n first_o of_o all_o upon_o who_o our_o saviour_n build_v his_o church_n and_o from_o who_o he_o institute_v and_o show_v the_o beginning_n of_o unity_n do_v he_o give_v this_o power_n that_o that_o shall_v be_v loose_v in_o the_o heaven_n which_o he_o have_v loose_v on_o earth_n 16._o earth_n hill_n in_o math._n 16._o s._n hilary_n in_o like_a sort_n cry_v out_o o_o bless_a porter_n of_o heaven_n unto_o who_o will_n and_o arbitrament_n the_o key_n of_o the_o eternal_a entry_n be_v deliver_v last_o mathaeum_n last_o chrisostome_n homil_n 55._o in_o mathaeum_n s._n john_n chrisostome_n and_o 32._o and_o gregor_n
upon_o this_o ground_n in_o the_o next_o chapter_n 2._o chap._n 2._o he_o enter_v into_o a_o rail_n and_o scoff_a discourse_n against_o the_o pope_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n i_o can_v do_v otherwise_o then_o marvel_v that_o a_o man_n of_o his_o place_n and_o learning_n do_v not_o blush_v to_o commit_v such_o a_o notorious_a untruth_n to_o the_o print_n and_o view_v of_o the_o world_n for_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o assertion_n because_o it_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n impertinent_a that_o which_o he_o say_v of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v most_o untrue_a repugnant_a to_o all_o antiquity_n and_o not_o only_o contrary_a to_o all_o proceed_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o say_a council_n but_o also_o to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n by_o he_o allege_v for_o in_o it_o be_v decree_v only_o that_o the_o city_n of_o new_a rome_n or_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v majesty_n like_a as_o old_a rome_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n et_fw-la secundam_fw-la post_fw-la illam_fw-la existere_fw-la that_o be_v shall_v be_v the_o second_o or_o next_o after_o it_o and_o enjoy_v certain_a privilege_n for_o the_o ordination_n of_o some_o metrapolitan_o these_o be_v the_o content_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o what_o more_o touch_a this_o matter_n do_v the_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o that_o council_n in_o their_o sinodical_a epistle_n desire_n s._n leo_n the_o great_a than_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o confirm_v than_o this_o 3._o concilium_fw-la chalcedom_n sessio_fw-la 12._o alias_fw-la actione_n 16._o an._n christi_fw-la 451._o concilium_fw-la nice_n sessio_fw-la ultim_fw-la conci_fw-la chal._n actione_n 1._o actione_n 3._o we_o have_v confirm_v say_v they_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o seavenscore_n and_o ten_o holy_a father_n which_o be_v gather_v together_o at_o constantinople_n under_o theodosius_n of_o happy_a memory_n which_o command_v that_o the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v ordain_v the_o second_o have_v second_o honour_n after_o your_o most_o holy_a and_o apostolic_a see_v trust_v that_o the_o apostolical_a sunbeam_n shine_v with_o you_o etc._n etc._n but_o how_o can_v it_o be_v the_o second_o and_o next_o after_o and_o also_o the_o equal_a with_o it_o as_o field_n affirm_v beside_o this_o in_o the_o council_n itself_o those_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ever_o have_v the_o primacy_n be_v allow_v and_o the_o legate_n of_o pope_n leo_n without_o reprehension_n or_o exception_n take_v say_v we_o have_v here_o at_o hand_n the_o commandment_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a and_o apostolic_a man_n the_o pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v head_n of_o all_o church_n by_o which_o his_o apostleship_n have_v vouchsafe_v to_o command_v etc._n etc._n again_o one_o of_o they_o first_o subscribe_v as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a and_o apostolic_a universal_a pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n all_o the_o father_n write_v unto_o he_o thus_o we_o crave_v therefore_o that_o you_o will_v honour_v our_o decree_n with_o your_o judgement_n and_o like_a as_o we_o desirous_a have_v consent_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v good_a sic_fw-la et_fw-la summitas_fw-la tua_fw-la so_o thy_o chiefedome_n or_o pre-eminence_n above_o all_o will_v as_o it_o be_v meet_v accomplish_v they_o to_o his_o child_n hitherto_o be_v their_o word_n and_o what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o apparent_a for_o the_o pope_n supreamacie_n do_v not_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v their_o chief_n and_o themselves_o his_o son_n and_o child_n chapter_n gregor_n li_z 4._o epi._n 32._o 36._o 38._o li._n 7._o epi._n 30._o see_v before_o in_o the_o first_o section_n of_o this_o chapter_n i_o can_v add_v to_o this_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o live_v not_o long_o after_o this_o council_n who_o against_o the_o ambition_n of_o john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o diverse_a letter_n confident_o affirm_v that_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n by_o this_o council_n be_v offer_v to_o pope_n leo._n but_o field_n will_v urge_v that_o it_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o some_o greek_a copy_n of_o this_o council_n that_o by_o this_o canon_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v so_o make_v second_o after_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o equal_a privilege_n be_v give_v he_o i_o answer_v that_o these_o privilege_n be_v only_o concern_v jurisdiction_n to_o order_v certain_a metrapolitan_o of_o the_o east_n church_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o like_a in_o the_o west_n but_o now_o suppose_v i_o shall_v grant_v m._n field_n that_o in_o this_o canon_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v make_v in_o every_o respect_n equal_a to_o the_o pope_n what_o will_v he_o get_v by_o this_o in_o truth_n nothing_o for_o of_o what_o authority_n be_v this_o canon_n sure_o of_o none_o for_o it_o be_v cunning_o make_v by_o the_o grecian_a bishop_n after_o the_o council_n be_v rise_v and_o the_o legate_n of_o pope_n leo_n depart_v who_o also_o when_o it_o come_v to_o their_o knowledge_n the_o next_o day_n resist_v they_o in_o the_o next_o session_n yea_o this_o be_v never_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n without_o who_o confirmation_n the_o decree_n of_o general_a counsel_n have_v never_o have_v force_n but_o be_v by_o pope_n leo_n forthwith_o overthrow_v and_o annul_v 61._o leo_n epist_n 55._o 53._o 54._o 61._o we_o cancel_v or_o make_v void_a say_v he_o speak_v of_o that_o canon_n and_o other_o then_o enact_v the_o consent_n of_o bishop_n repugnant_a to_o the_o nicene_n canon_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o bless_a s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n by_o a_o general_a definition_n we_o make_v they_o altogether_o of_o no_o force_n and_o this_o his_o decree_n be_v so_o high_o esteem_v in_o the_o east_n itself_o ecclesia_fw-la marcian_n l._n 12._o c._n de_fw-fr sacrosancta_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la that_o it_o be_v confirm_v present_o by_o a_o imperial_a constitution_n even_o by_o the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n and_o anatolius_n the_o patriarcke_n through_o who_o ambition_n and_o instigation_n the_o say_a canon_n be_v make_v be_v constrain_v to_o cease_v from_o such_o proceed_n to_o relinquish_v that_o dignity_n which_o ambitioussie_n he_o cover_v and_o to_o take_v place_n even_o after_o the_o other_o patriarch_n for_o neither_o be_v the_o constitution_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o prefer_v he_o before_o those_o of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n authentical_a 1._o justin_n novel_a 131._o cap._n 2._o field_n book_n 3._o cap._n 1._o yea_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n after_o this_o even_o when_o rome_n be_v most_o in_o disgrace_n and_o constantinople_n flourish_v long_o before_o the_o day_n of_o phocas_n from_o who_o field_n will_v derive_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o pope_n superiority_n confirm_v the_o primacy_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o thus_o we_o may_v see_v upon_o how_o weak_a ground_n field_n do_v venture_v to_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o modesty_n concern_v the_o point_n itself_o of_o the_o pope_n infallible_a judgement_n he_o accuse_v we_o of_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o all_o hold_v at_o this_o day_n 45._o field_n book_n 3._o cap._n 45._o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n to_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o therefore_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o the_o same_o whereas_o the_o same_o man_n say_v he_o that_o hold_v this_o say_v also_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o acknowledge_v or_o not_o acknowledge_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n without_o the_o assent_n of_o a_o general_a council_n be_v not_o the_o most_o sure_a &_o receive_a rock_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v for_o this_o be_v the_o pope_n judgement_n confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_a council_n or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_a council_n in_o which_o the_o head_n confirm_v the_o verdict_n of_o the_o body_n and_o both_o together_o infallible_o define_v a_o truth_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n no_o catholic_a now_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o acknowledge_v or_o not_o acknowledge_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n for_o it_o be_v hold_v absolute_o to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o consequent_o our_o doctrine_n touch_v these_o point_n be_v not_o contrary_a true_a it_o be_v 4._o bell._n li._n 4._o the_o roman_a pontiff_n ca._n 2._o in_o fine_a stapleton_n in_o relect._n schola_v princi_fw-la controver_n 3_o quest_n 4._o that_o some_o catholic_a doctor_n as_o bellarmine_n and_o stapleton_n think_v not_o that_o opinion_n proper_o heretical_a which_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n as_o pope_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n and_o teach_v heresy_n if_o he_o
in_o very_a deed_n inwardlie_o profane_a atheist_n and_o that_o the_o say_v new_a religion_n be_v a_o very_a fountain_n of_o atheism_n and_o in_o proof_n of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o assertion_n i_o need_v not_o use_v many_o word_n or_o long_a discourse_n for_o so_o it_o be_v that_o diverse_a principal_a professor_n and_o follower_n of_o this_o new_a belief_n confess_v and_o acknowledge_v a_o great_a number_n of_o such_o impious_a and_o irreligious_a person_n 7._o zauchius_n in_o his_o epistle_n before_o his_o confession_n pa._n 7._o to_o be_v in_o their_o congregation_n of_o foreign_a sectary_n zauchius_n affirm_v that_o among_o other_o monster_n atheism_n have_v be_v fetch_v out_o of_o hell_n by_o the_o minister_n of_o sathan_n in_o some_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o our_o own_o countryman_n religion_n countryman_n whitg_n in_o his_o defence_n tract_n 3._o cap._n 6._o pag._n 278._o see_v also_o hooker_n in_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o ecclesiast_fw-la policy_n §_o 2._o mornay_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o proof_n of_o christian_n religion_n whitgift_n complain_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v replenish_v with_o atheist_n the_o same_o complaint_n have_v hedio_fw-la powel_n park_n &_o other_o as_o will_v appear_v by_o some_o of_o their_o sentence_n which_o i_o shall_v relate_v hereafter_o to_o come_v therefore_o to_o the_o second_o part_n see_v that_o this_o impiety_n reign_v now_o more_o among_o our_o adversary_n than_o it_o have_v do_v in_o former_a age_n among_o christian_n in_o which_o such_o monster_n be_v not_o so_o usual_o find_v and_o common_o see_v it_o be_v like_a that_o it_o have_v some_o root_n and_o offspring_n in_o these_o day_n among_o they_o which_o appear_v not_o in_o the_o religion_n of_o our_o forefather_n and_o predecessor_n and_o what_o be_v this_o root_n sure_o it_o be_v not_o one_o but_o diverse_a and_o for_o the_o first_o cause_n of_o this_o blasphemy_n i_o assign_v their_o dissension_n and_o inconstancy_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n without_o any_o certain_a ground_n whereon_o to_o build_v their_o belief_n or_o mean_v of_o end_v and_o decide_v such_o controversy_n as_o arise_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v subject_a to_o these_o inconvenience_n it_o shall_v at_o large_a be_v prove_v hereafter_o that_o such_o dissension_n inconstancy_n want_n of_o firm_a ground_n and_o mean_a to_o end_v controversy_n may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o be_v root_n &_o fountain_n of_o atheism_n it_o be_v apparent_a because_o of_o these_o thing_n may_v well_o be_v infer_v a_o uncertainty_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v always_o one_o and_o constant_a to_o herself_o and_o not_o divine_a foundation_n of_o the_o religion_n profess_v or_o revelation_n of_o the_o truth_n preach_v because_o thing_n proceed_v from_o god_n who_o wisdom_n and_o providence_n be_v infinite_a can_v be_v subject_a to_o such_o absurdity_n hence_o diverse_a be_v first_o by_o the_o false_a calumny_n &_o unjust_a slander_n of_o their_o ringleader_n clean_o avert_v from_o our_o religion_n in_o which_o only_o a_o sure_a ground_n a_o immovable_a rock_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o firm_a pillar_n of_o truth_n be_v find_v then_o in_o their_o new_a profession_n be_v toss_v hither_o and_o thither_o concern_v the_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o find_v no_o certain_a authority_n whereon_o to_o rest_v or_o firm_a foundation_n whereon_o to_o build_v a_o firm_a and_o undoubted_a resolution_n be_v bring_v final_o to_o this_o that_o they_o think_v all_o article_n to_o be_v of_o a_o uncertain_a truth_n and_o consequent_o imagine_v religion_n to_o be_v but_o a_o politic_a invention_n of_o man_n and_o so_o become_v atheist_n s._n hilary_n even_o in_o his_o day_n complain_v augustum_fw-la hillar_n lib._n ad_fw-la constantium_fw-la augustum_fw-la that_o the_o arian_n heretic_n by_o these_o mean_n of_o christian_n make_v atheist_n these_o be_v his_o word_n perilous_a and_o miserable_a it_o be_v that_o there_o be_v now_o so_o many_o faith_n as_o will_n and_o so_o many_o doctrine_n as_o manner_n while_o either_o faith_n be_v so_o write_v as_o we_o will_v or_o as_o we_o will_v be_v so_o understand_v and_o whereas_o according_a to_o one_o god_n &_o one_o lord_n &_o one_o baptism_n there_o be_v also_o one_o faith_n they_o fall_v away_o from_o that_o which_o be_v the_o only_a faith_n and_o while_o no_o faith_n be_v make_v they_o begin_v to_o come_v to_o this_o that_o there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o hitherto_o s._n hilary_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v certain_a protestant_n declare_v unto_o we_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v here_o say_v touch_v this_o offspring_n of_o this_o impiety_n in_o their_o congregation_n 1605._o relation_n of_o the_o state_n of_o religion_n use_v in_o the_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n §_o 45._o print_v at_o london_n anno_fw-la 1605._o and_o first_o a_o protestant_a relator_n of_o the_o state_n of_o religion_n use_v in_o the_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n discourse_v thus_o the_o division_n of_o protestant_n into_o their_o faction_n of_o lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n threaten_v a_o great_a ruin_n and_o calamity_n of_o both_o side_n and_o soon_o after_o have_v show_v how_o the_o lutheran_n preacher_n rage_n in_o their_o pulpit_n against_o the_o other_o he_o add_v the_o roman_n have_v the_o pope_n as_o a_o common_a father_n adviser_n and_o conductor_n to_o they_o all_o to_o reconcile_v their_o jar_n to_o appease_v their_o displeasure_n to_o decide_v their_o difference_n and_o final_o to_o unite_v their_o endeavour_n in_o one_o course_n etc._n etc._n to_o draw_v their_o religious_a by_o consent_n of_o counsel_n to_o a_o unity_n or_o likeness_n and_o conformity_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o protestant_n be_v as_o sever_v band_n or_o rather_o scatter_a troop_n each_o draw_v adverse_a way_n without_o any_o mean_n to_o pacify_v their_o quarrel_n to_o take_v up_o their_o controversy_n without_o any_o bond_n to_o knit_v their_o force_n or_o course_n in_o one_o no_o prince_n with_o any_o pre-eminence_n of_o jurisdiction_n above_o the_o rest_n no_o patriarch_n one_o or_o more_o to_o have_v a_o common_a superintendance_n or_o care_n over_o their_o church_n for_o correspondency_n and_o unity_n no_o ordinary_a way_n to_o assemble_v a_o general_a council_n of_o their_o part_n the_o only_o hope_v remain_v ever_o to_o assuage_v their_o contention_n and_o the_o only_o desire_v of_o the_o wise_a and_o best_a mind_n among_o they_o every_o church_n almost_o of_o they_o have_v his_o several_a form_n and_o frame_v of_o government_n his_o several_a liturgy_n and_o fashion_n of_o service_n and_o last_o some_o several_a opinion_n from_o the_o rest_n which_o though_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v matter_n of_o no_o great_a moment_n be_v no_o difference_n essential_a or_o any_o part_n capital_a yet_o have_v they_o be_v be_v and_o will_v be_v as_o long_o as_o they_o continue_v cause_n of_o dislike_n of_o jealousy_n of_o quarrel_n and_o danger_n these_o contention_n tend_v main_o to_o the_o increase_n of_o atheism_n within_o of_o mahometisme_n abroad_o hitherto_o be_v the_o relator_n word_n but_o before_o he_o bullenger_n a_o principal_a doctor_n among_o the_o sacramentary_n note_v the_o same_o effect_n of_o these_o contention_n even_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o new_a religion_n melanct._n bullenger_n in_o firmamento_fw-la firmo_fw-la contra_fw-la brentium_n ca._n 1._o mayor_n in_o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr cofus_fw-la dogmatum_fw-la headsman_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la melanct._n for_o he_o write_v that_o diverse_a in_o his_o day_n be_v so_o move_v with_o that_o vehement_a and_o implacable_a dissension_n between_o the_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n that_o as_o it_o be_v despair_v &_o be_v clean_o out_o of_o hope_n they_o say_v they_o will_v believe_v no_o more_o than_o they_o please_v major_a in_o like_a sort_n a_o lutheran_n of_o no_o less_o same_o confess_v that_o diverse_a be_v so_o move_v with_o their_o scandal_n and_o dissension_n that_o they_o doubt_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o true_a church_n of_o god_n extant_a in_o the_o world_n or_o no._n unto_o these_o i_o add_v hedio_fw-la a_o three_o sectary_n who_o have_v complain_v that_o there_o be_v almost_o one_o hundred_o twenty_o and_o eight_o error_n among_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o they_o fall_v to_o atheism_n &_o neglect_n of_o religion_n affirm_v that_o they_o assign_v their_o dissension_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o these_o evil_n but_o concern_v their_o atheism_n he_o also_o afterwards_o use_v these_o word_n the_o popedom_n be_v reject_v and_o name_n be_v not_o give_v to_o christ_n the_o youth_n have_v almost_o nothing_o of_o god_n and_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o our_o church_n of_o england_n have_v not_o the_o dissension_n among_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n bring_v man_n to_o the_o same_o pass_v constantium_fw-la park_n in_o the_o epistle_n dedicatory_a before_o his_o
caluinian_a sect_n common_a with_o the_o ancient_a arian_n and_o nestorian_n in_o which_o be_v demonstrate_v that_o no_o christian_n can_v join_v himself_o to_o the_o caluinist_n except_o be_v together_o undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o arianisme_n and_o nestorianisme_n 9_o joamn_v schut_v in_o l._n 50._o causa_fw-la run_v causa_fw-la 48._o conrade_n schlus_n selb_n in_o prefa_n theolo_fw-it caluinist_n impsess_v francof_n a_o 1592._o and_o 1594._o ibid._n l._n 1._o art_n 2._o foe_n 9_o et_fw-la 10._o fol._n 9_o tubingae_n anno_fw-la 1586._o a_o four_o call_v mahometisme_n or_o turkism_n arianisme_n and_o caluinisme_n three_o brother_n and_o sister_n three_o pair_n of_o hose_n of_o the_o same_o cloth_n a_o five_o man_n more_o famous_a for_o learning_n then_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o in_o dignity_n a_o superintendent_n who_o as_o he_o protest_v have_v read_v over_o &_o over_o the_o sacramentary_n work_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o and_o twenty_o year_n avouch_v that_o the_o caluinist_n do_v nourish_v arian_n and_o turkish_a impiety_n in_o their_o heart_n which_o do_v not_o seldom_o at_o fit_a time_n open_o disclose_v itself_o and_o that_o the_o caluinist_n do_v open_v the_o window_n and_o door_n to_o arianisme_n and_o mahometisme_n as_o say_v he_o our_o divine_n by_o their_o public_a book_n have_v show_v and_o this_o he_o prove_v by_o the_o example_n and_o testimony_n of_o one_o adamus_n neuserus_fw-la a_o minister_n who_o of_o a_o arian_n become_v a_o turk_n and_o write_v a_o letter_n from_o constantinople_n to_o one_o of_o his_o acquaintance_n in_o germany_n anno_fw-la 1574._o julij_fw-la 2._o in_o which_o he_o use_v these_o word_n no_o man_n that_o i_o have_v know_v in_o these_o our_o day_n become_v a_o arian_n which_o be_v not_o before_o a_o caluinist_n seruetus_fw-la blandrata_n alciatus_fw-la franciscus_n david_n gentilis_fw-la gribaldus_n silvanus_n and_o other_o wherefore_o he_o that_o fear_v lest_o that_o he_o falinto_o arianisme_n let_v he_o beware_v of_o caluinisme_n thus_o he_o grawerus_n a_o sixth_o lutheran_n be_v a_o writer_n of_o these_o our_o day_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o book_n by_o he_o call_v the_o absurd_a the_o most_o absurd_a of_o absurd_a caluinistical_a absurdity_n etc._n etc._n pronounce_v the_o like_a censure_n against_o caluin_n and_o his_o scholar_n for_o have_v discourse_v of_o this_o matter_n at_o the_o length_n he_o use_v these_o word_n to_o his_o adversary_n spongia_n grawer_n praefat_fw-la apologet._n in_o absurda_fw-la absurdorun_v absur_fw-la dissima_fw-la etc._n etc._n print_a anno_o 1605._o §_o quar_fw-la ta_fw-fr spongia_n go_v thy_o way_n now_o and_o say_v that_o arian_n come_v not_o forth_o of_o the_o caluinist_n school_n and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o he_o also_o report_v the_o same_o example_n of_o adamus_n neuserus_fw-la which_o also_o say_v he_o adam_z neuserus_fw-la in_o time_n past_o a_o caluinist_n and_o a_o divine_a of_o heidelberge_n confess_v that_o he_o know_v not_o one_o in_o his_o time_n make_v a_o arian_n who_o be_v not_o first_o a_o caluinist_n as_o franciscus_n david_n blandrata_n silvanus_n gribaldus_n and_o other_o a_o seven_o man_n as_o great_o renown_v for_o learning_n as_o any_o already_o name_v discover_v another_o foundation_n of_o arianisme_n or_o rather_o of_o judaisme_n his_o book_n be_v entitle_v as_o follow_v caluinus_n jadaizan_n caluin_n judaize_v or_o play_v the_o jew_n that_o be_v say_v he_o the_o jewish_a gloss_n and_o depravation_n by_o which_o john_n caluin_n have_v not_o abhor_v after_o a_o detestable_a manner_n to_o corrupt_v the_o most_o famous_a or_o excellent_a place_n and_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n concern_v the_o glorious_a trinity_n the_o deity_n or_o godhead_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o especial_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n his_o nativity_n passion_n resurrection_n trinit_fw-la see_v h●●_n also_o in_o praefat_fw-la tractat_fw-la de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la ascension_n into_o heaven_n and_o his_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n there_o be_v also_o add_v a_o confutation_n of_o the_o depravation_n by_o eugidius_n hunnius_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n and_o professor_n in_o the_o university_n of_o wittenberg_n wittenbergae_n anno_fw-la 1593._o and_o again_o 1604._o in_o his_o epistle_n dedicatory_a he_o accuse_v caluin_n that_o by_o his_o foul_a depravation_n he_o have_v wrest_v the_o scripture_n horrible_o from_o their_o true_a sense_n another_o way_n to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o himself_o and_o other_o and_o he_o add_v to_o make_v this_o more_o full_o know_v i_o will_v adjoyne_v diverse_a testimony_n which_o that_o caluin_n by_o his_o wily_a deceit_n have_v weaken_v and_o make_v unprofitable_a to_o repress_v the_o jewish_a perfidy_n and_o the_o arian_n infidelity_n i_o think_v it_o good_a also_o say_v he_o to_o add_v moreover_o those_o depravation_n by_o which_o he_o wrap_v or_o cover_v the_o most_o noble_a prophecy_n of_o the_o prophet_n touch_v the_o messiah_n with_o jewish_a corruption_n and_o have_v not_o only_o most_o high_o despise_v and_o laugh_v to_o scorn_n that_o holy_a interpetation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a but_o in_o many_o sentence_n have_v not_o fear_v wicked_o to_o mock_v or_o shift_v the_o holy_a explication_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n themselves_o which_o if_o i_o do_v not_o demonstrate_v to_o the_o eye_n especial_o when_o i_o shall_v come_v to_o those_o prophecy_n of_o the_o prophet_n let_v i_o never_o hereafter_o be_v credit_v in_o any_o thing_n whatsoever_o hitherto_o be_v his_o word_n in_o his_o book_n he_o discover_v this_o manner_n of_o proceed_v of_o caluin_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o scripture_n touch_v these_o place_n among_o other_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n gen._n 1._o vers_fw-la 1._o gen._n 19_o v._n 24._o psal_n 2._o v._n 7._o allege_v by_o s._n paul_n act_v 13._o v._o 33._o and_o hebr._n 1._o v._o 5._o cap._n 5._o v._n 5._o psal_n 33._o alias_fw-la 32._o v._o 6._o concern_v which_o see_v he_o also_o in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o institution_n chap._n 13._o §_o 15._o psal_a 44._o alias_fw-la 45._o v._o 7._o etc._n etc._n cite_v by_o the_o apostle_n hebr._n 1._o v._o 8._o psal_a 68_o v._n 19_o allege_v by_o the_o same_o apostle_n ephes_n 4._o v._n 8._o michae_n 5._o v._o 3._o see_v math._n 2._o v._n 6._o isai_n 6._o v._o 3._o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n he_o recite_v his_o horrible_a commentary_n upon_o these_o place_n genesis_n 13._o v._o 15._o and_o concern_v the_o nativity_n of_o the_o messiah_n hieremy_n 31._o v._o 22._o aggeus_n 2._o v._o 8._o touch_v s._n john_n baptist_n isai_n 40._o v._o 3._o allege_v math._n 3._o v._n 3._o mark_n 1._o v._n 3._o luc._n 1._o v._n 4._o john_n 1._o v._o 23._o of_o christ_n preach_v deutr._fw-la 18._o v._o 15._o cite_v act_n the_o three_o 21._o 22._o act._n 7._o v._n 37._o isai_n 61._o v._o 1._o allege_v by_o christ_n himself_o luc_n 4._o v._o 18._o of_o his_o come_n to_o jerusalem_n zach._n 9_o v._o 9_o cite_a mat._n 21._o v._n 5._o john_n 12._o v._n 15._o of_o his_o passion_n gen._n 3._o v._n 15._o zach._n 13._o v._o 7._o allege_v by_o christ_n mat._n 26._o v._n 32._o mark_n 14._o v._n 27._o zach._n 11._o v._o 12._o cite_v by_o s._n mat._n 27._o v._n 9_o isa_n 50._o v._n 5._o et_fw-la 6._o psal_n 8._o v._n 6._o see_v the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 15._o v._o 27._o hebr._n 2._o v._o 7._o psal_a 22._o allege_v by_o s._n math._n 27._o joh._n 19_o v._n 23._o heb._n 2._o v._o 12._o isa_n 63._o v._n 1._o see_v apocal._n 19_o v._o 13._o of_o christ_n resurrection_n psal_n 16._o v._n 8._o cite_v by_o s._n peter_n act._n 2._o v._n 25._o ibid._n v._o 10._o allege_v act._n 2._o v._n 31._o cap._n 13._o v._n 33._o osee_n 13._o v._o 14._o cite_v 1._o corint_fw-la 5._o v._n 54._o hebr._n 2._o v._o 14._o touch_v his_o ascension_n zachary_n 14._o v._o 4._o and_o his_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n psal_n 110._o v._n 1._o cite_v diverse_a time_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n these_o and_o other_o such_o like_a place_n caluin_n as_o this_o protestant_a doctor_n plain_o show_v have_v pervert_v and_o weaken_v with_o his_o blaspheamous_a and_o jewish_a gloss_n of_o which_o place_n diverse_a be_v by_o our_o saviour_n &c_n &c_n his_o apostle_n themeselue_n expound_v as_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o religion_n but_o not_o so_o well_o and_o litterallie_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v caluin_n and_o this_o his_o abominable_a fault_n be_v likewise_o note_v by_o conradus_n and_o grawer_n 〈◊〉_d before_o name_v etc._n conrade_n in_o theolog_n caluinist_n l._n 2._o c._n 6._o fol._n 38._o grawerus_n in_o praefat_fw-la apol._n in_o absurda_fw-la ab_fw-la surdorun_v etc._n etc._n i_o can_v add_v the_o like_a discourse_n touch_v some_o plain_a proof_n of_o the_o divinity_n
luke_n libr._n 1._o machab_n cap._n 6._o li._n 2._o c._n 1._o et_fw-la 9_o item_n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o lib._n 2._o ca●_n impugn_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n because_o as_o they_o say_v they_o find_v in_o they_o contraction_n concern_v the_o death_n of_o autiochus_n illustris_fw-la the_o purgation_n of_o the_o temple_n make_v by_o judas_n machabeus_n etc._n etc._n the_o like_a argument_n they_o bring_v against_o the_o book_n of_o toby_n judith_n and_o other_o which_o if_o we_o admit_v wherefore_o may_v not_o some_o person_n of_o a_o atheistical_a humour_n by_o the_o same_o manner_n of_o argue_v deny_v and_o reject_v most_o of_o the_o canonical_a book_n contain_v in_o the_o bible_n as_o for_o example_n the_o book_n of_o genesis_n because_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o it_o we_o read_v 14._o gen._n 1._o v._n 14._o that_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n by_o which_o day_n night_n and_o year_n be_v also_o there_o say_v to_o be_v distinguish_v be_v make_v on_o the_o four_o day_n which_o seem_v to_o imply_v contradiction_n because_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o day_n and_o night_n be_v divide_v by_o these_o planet_n as_o it_o be_v there_o affirm_v and_o we_o see_v by_o daily_a experience_n 15._o 2._o reg._n 23_o 11._o 1._o par._n 11_o 13._o according_a to_o the_o new_a sect_n samuel_n 2._o chronic._n 1.3_o reg._n or_o 1._o of_o king_n 7_o 15._o 2._o par._n 3_o 15._o how_o can_v there_o be_v three_o day_n and_o night_n before_o these_o planet_n be_v make_v also_o the_o second_o book_n of_o the_o king_n or_o the_o first_o of_o paralippomenon_n because_o that_o field_n which_o in_o the_o one_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v full_a of_o lentile_n in_o the_o other_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v full_a of_o barley_n moreover_o the_o three_o book_n of_o the_o king_n or_o the_o second_o of_o paralippomenon_n because_o in_o the_o first_o we_o make_v that_o the_o two_o great_a brazen_a pillar_n make_v by_o solomon_n be_v of_o thirty_o eight_o cubit_n in_o length_n but_o in_o the_o second_o of_o paralippomenon_n the_o length_n of_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v thirty_o five_o cubit_n yea_o between_o the_o new_a tetament_n and_o the_o old_a and_o between_o the_o evangelist_n themselves_o in_o the_o new_a such_o contradiction_n in_o outward_a show_n may_v be_v espy_v for_o s._n matthew_n tell_v we_o 21._o math._n 1_o 8.4_o reg._n 8_o 24._o cap._n 11_o 1._o et_fw-la 2._o ca._n 12_o 21._o cap._n 14_o 21._o that_o joram_n beget_v ozias_n whereas_o in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o the_o king_n which_o our_o adversary_n call_v the_o second_o it_o be_v write_v that_o joram_n be_v father_n to_o ochozias_n ochozias_n to_o joas_n joas_n to_o amasias_n and_o amasias_n not_o joram_n to_o ozias_n otherwise_o call_v azarias_n luc._n 3._o v._n 36._o it_o be_v say_v that_o arphaxad_n be_v father_n to_o cainan_n and_o cainan_n to_o sale_n but_o genesis_n 10._o vers_fw-la 34._o arphaxad_n be_v say_v to_o have_v beget_v sale_n matthew_n 1._o verse_n 16._o the_o father_n of_o joseph_n our_o bless_a lady_n husband_n be_v call_v jacob_n 14._o luke_n 3.23_o mat._n 10_o 10._o mark_n 6_o 8._o mat._n 26_o 34._o luke_n 22_o 34._o mat._n 26_o 74._o luke_n 22_o 60._o john_n 18_o 27._o mark_v 14_o 30.68_o et_fw-fr 71._o mark_v 15_o 25._o john_n 19_o 14._o whereas_o s._n luke_n name_v he_o heli._n the_o same_o saint_n matthew_n report_v that_o our_o saviour_n send_v his_o apostle_n to_o preach_v forbid_v they_o to_o bear_v a_o rod_n or_o staff_n in_o their_o hand_n whereas_o s._n mark_n write_v that_o he_o bid_v they_o take_v only_o a_o rod_n or_o staff_n our_o saviour_n if_o we_o believe_v s._n matthew_n and_o s._n luke_n tell_v s._n peter_n that_o before_o the_o cock_n do_v crow_v he_o shall_v deny_v he_o thrice_o and_o so_o it_o be_v do_v according_a to_o the_o same_o evangelist_n and_o s._n john_n but_o s._n mark_n report_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o have_v be_v before_o the_o cock_n shall_v crow_v twice_o thou_o shall_v thrice_o deny_v i_o and_o writteh_fw-it that_o the_o cock_n do_v first_o crow_v present_o after_o his_o first_o denial_n and_o again_o after_o his_o three_o the_o same_o s._n mark_n affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v crucify_v at_o the_o three_o hour_n but_o s._n john_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v about_o the_o sixth_o hour_n before_o he_o be_v condemn_v by_o pilate_n matthew_n 27._o verse_n 19_o jeremias_n the_o prophet_n be_v name_v for_o zacharias_n add_v also_o that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o foretell_v as_o s._n matthew_n write_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v in_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o earth_n three_o day_n and_o three_o night_n 40._o mat._n 12_o 40._o yet_o every_o man_n know_v that_o he_o yield_v up_o his_o sacred_a soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o father_n about_o three_o hour_n after_o noon_n on_o the_o friday_n and_o rise_v again_o on_o the_o sunday_n morning_n very_o early_o wherefore_o although_o we_o grant_v that_o his_o soul_n be_v in_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o his_o body_n in_o the_o grave_n during_o part_n of_o three_o day_n yet_o we_o shall_v very_o hardly_o find_v out_o three_o night_n 7._o act_n 9_o 7._o neither_o be_v s._n luke_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n altogether_o free_a from_o this_o show_n of_o contradiction_n for_o albeit_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o s._n paul_n he_o say_v that_o the_o man_n that_o go_v in_o company_n with_o he_o to_o damascus_n 10._o act._n 20_o 10._o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n speak_v unto_o he_o yet_o in_o another_o place_n he_o relate_v the_o word_n of_o the_o same_o apostle_n affirm_v that_o they_o hear_v it_o not_o final_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n himself_o who_o epistle_n our_o adversary_n so_o high_o esteem_v seem_v to_o contradict_v some_o part_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o example_n he_o affirm_v galat._n 3_o vers_fw-la 17._o that_o between_o the_o time_n of_o a_o certain_a promise_n make_v by_o god_n to_o abraham_n genes_n 12.13_o or_o 22._o and_o the_o law_n give_v to_o moses_n there_o pass_v four_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o year_n whereas_o it_o be_v plain_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o history_n of_o genesis_n that_o between_o the_o time_n of_o the_o say_a promise_n and_o the_o go_n of_o jacob_n withal_o his_o family_n into_o egypt_n there_o pass_v at_o the_o least_o one_o hundred_o and_o threescore_o of_o which_o jacob_n not_o then_o bear_v live_v about_o one_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o genes_n 47._o vers_fw-la 9_o unto_o which_o if_o we_o add_v four_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o during_o which_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n remain_v in_o egypt_n as_o the_o express_a word_n of_o exodus_fw-la chap._n 12._o vers_fw-la 40._o tell_v we_o and_o be_v insinuate_v genes_n 15._o vers_fw-la 23._o between_o the_o aforesaid_a promise_n &_o the_o law_n give_v we_o shall_v find_v at_o the_o least_o five_o hundred_o ninety_o year_n not_o only_o four_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o 4._o hebr._n 9_o 4._o as_o s._n paul_n reckon_v in_o like_a sort_n the_o same_o apostle_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n seem_v to_o contradict_v the_o three_o book_n of_o the_o king_n which_o our_o adversary_n call_v the_o first_o and_o the_o second_o of_o paralippomenon_n for_o he_o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v a_o golden_a pot_n have_v manna_n &_o the_o rod_n of_o aaron_n that_o have_v blossom_v 9_o 3._o reg._n 8_o 9_o &_o the_o table_n of_o the_o testament_n but_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n allege_v we_o read_v that_o no_o other_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o ark_n but_o the_o table_n of_o the_o testament_n 10._o 2._o paral._n 5._o verse_n 10._o diverse_a other_o such_o like_a sentence_n in_o word_n seem_v to_o contain_v contradiction_n may_v be_v find_v in_o these_o and_o other_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o as_o i_o have_v say_v may_v move_v atheist_n with_o as_o great_a reason_n to_o impugn_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o say_a book_n as_o our_o adversary_n do_v by_o the_o like_a argument_n the_o book_n of_o toby_n judith_n the_o maccabee_n and_o other_o by_o we_o receive_v and_o by_o they_o reject_v perhaps_o they_o will_v answer_v that_o the_o seem_a contradiction_n which_o i_o have_v assign_v be_v in_o very_a deed_n no_o contradiction_n and_o that_o the_o place_n in_o appearance_n contrary_a may_v very_o well_o be_v reconcile_v i_o reply_v and_o confess_v that_o in_o very_a truth_n so_o it_o be_v for_o all_o those_o place_n by_o our_o interpreter_n be_v very_o well_o save_v from_o contrariety_n and_o contradiction_n and_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n who_o inspire_v all_o the_o writer_n of_o holy_a scripture_n can_v contradict_v himself_o and_o these_o
devise_v by_o the_o say_a author_n or_o do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o by_o some_o natural_a cause_n wherefore_o may_v not_o then_o atheist_n say_v that_o either_o it_o be_v a_o fable_n that_o etc._n that_o john_n 11._o act._n 9_o math._n 9_o v._n 20._o etc._n etc._n christ_n raise_v lazarus_n &_o other_o or_o s._n peter_n tabytha_n or_o that_o our_o saviour_n cast_v out_o devil_n or_o that_o a_o woman_n be_v heal_v of_o a_o issue_n of_o blood_n by_o touch_v the_o hem_n of_o his_o garment_n or_o else_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v as_o the_o jew_n say_v by_o the_o power_n of_o belzebub_n prince_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o by_o the_o application_n of_o some_o natural_a cause_n sure_o he_o will_v have_v as_o little_a regard_n of_o scripture_n as_o they_o have_v of_o the_o work_n of_o sulpitius_n severus_n and_o therefore_o if_o they_o grant_v it_o of_o the_o miracle_n of_o s._n martin_n and_o other_o he_o will_v affirm_v it_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n although_o mention_v in_o the_o say_a scripture_n in_o like_a sort_n 8._o sort_n august_n lib._n 22._o the_o civet_n cap._n 8._o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la which_o no_o man_n will_v deny_v to_o be_v of_o as_o great_a authority_n as_o any_o other_o of_o his_o work_n 103._o work_n sermo_n de_fw-fr diversis_fw-la 31._o 32._o 33._o epist_n 103._o and_o else_o where_o relate_v diverse_a miracle_n wrought_v by_o the_o relic_n of_o s._n steeven_n the_o first_o martyr_n as_o that_o by_o touch_v they_o a_o blind_a woman_n receive_v her_o sight_n that_o a_o bishop_n by_o carry_v they_o in_o procession_n be_v cure_v of_o a_o fistula_n and_o that_o two_o by_o pray_v in_o the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v reserve_v be_v cure_v of_o a_o palsy_n and_o both_o s._n ambrose_n and_o s._n augustine_n do_v the_o like_a 12._o ambr._n serm_n 5._o the_o sanct_n et_fw-fr l._n 7_o ep_n 53._o 54._o eau_fw-fr romanae_fw-la aug._n l._n 9_o confess_v c._n et_fw-fr l._n 22._o de_fw-la ciu_o c._n 8_o etc._n etc._n lib._n 4._o or_o 2._o reg._n cap._n 13._o act._n 19_o v._n 12._o concern_v the_o relic_n of_o s._n geruasius_n and_o protasius_n martyr_n as_o that_o a_o blind_a man_n be_v cure_v by_o touch_v of_o the_o beire_n or_o coffin_n whereon_o the_o relic_n be_v carry_v which_o miracle_n with_o the_o same_o answer_n be_v reject_v by_o our_o adversary_n but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o a_o atheist_n may_v with_o the_o like_a reason_n reject_v the_o miracle_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o relic_n or_o dead_a body_n of_o elisaeus_n by_o the_o touch_n of_o which_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o king_n a_o dead_a man_n be_v raise_v to_o life_n and_o other_o wrought_v by_o napkin_n and_o handkerchief_n which_o have_v touch_v the_o body_n of_o s._n paul_n which_o be_v say_v to_o have_v do_v miracle_n in_o the_o act_n of_o apostle_n the_o like_a discourse_n may_v be_v make_v concern_v the_o cure_n of_o naaman_n sirus_n by_o wash_v himself_o seven_o time_n in_o the_o river_n of_o jordan_n at_o the_o commandment_n of_o elizeus_fw-la the_o prophet_n 6._o 4._o reg._n 6._o the_o say_v prophet_n make_v of_o the_o iron_n of_o a_o hatchet_n to_o swim_v upon_o the_o water_n of_o the_o say_a river_n and_o diverse_a other_o miracle_n record_v both_o by_o holy_a writ_n &_o the_o monument_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n of_o all_o age_n against_o all_o which_o our_o adversary_n offer_v a_o occasion_n to_o atheist_n to_o pronounce_v the_o self_n same_o censure_n moreover_o whereas_o the_o apparition_n of_o soul_n depart_v according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o learned_a both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a yield_v a_o most_o strong_a proof_n of_o our_o soul_n immortality_n these_o sectary_n deny_v that_o ever_o there_o have_v be_v any_o such_o apparition_n and_o consequent_o seek_v to_o bereave_v we_o of_o this_o important_a argument_n their_o word_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o this_o can_v be_v deny_v luther_n himself_o write_v thus_o trinitate_fw-la luth._o in_o explicat_fw-la euangelij_fw-la de_fw-la divite_fw-la et_fw-la lazaro_n idem_fw-la in_o euam_fw-la dominicae_fw-la 24._o a_o trinitate_fw-la no_o man_n soul_n ever_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n have_v appear_v for_o neither_o do_v god_n permit_v it_o again_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o it_o be_v whole_o the_o devil_n work_n or_o do_v quicksand_n quid_fw-la uspiam_fw-la est_fw-la spirituum_fw-la apparentium_fw-la whatsoever_o be_v any_o where_o of_o soul_n or_o spirit_n appear_v zuinglius_fw-la be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n for_o these_o word_n he_o have_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o one_o valentinus_n comparem_fw-la valentinus_n zue_v resp_n ad_fw-la valentinun_n comparem_fw-la those_o thing_n which_o thou_o babble_v of_o the_o apparition_n of_o soul_n be_v vain_a and_o idle_a for_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v separate_v from_o their_o body_n be_v in_o heaven_n or_o in_o hell_n those_o which_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n never_o come_v down_o those_o which_o be_v in_o hell_n can_v be_v deliver_v the_o like_a have_v 10._o have_v bullinger_n decad_a 4._o ser_n 10._o bullinger_n and_o other_o final_o their_o denial_n of_o freewill_n &_o the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n do_v weaken_v the_o proof_n of_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o god_n be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o our_o action_n &_o consequent_o of_o the_o proof_n also_o of_o heaven_n &_o hell_n as_o every_o man_n will_v confess_v &_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o this_o chapter_n that_o these_o sectary_n church_n be_v a_o seminary_n of_o atheism_n and_o that_o by_o their_o doctrine_n they_o shake_v and_o even_o overthrow_v the_o very_a ground_n of_o all_o religion_n which_o their_o assertion_n be_v suppose_v as_o true_a they_o can_v neither_o prove_v nor_o defend_v against_o atheist_n and_o enemy_n of_o christianity_n chapter_n 2._o the_o new_a sectary_n debase_v the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o in_o place_n of_o it_o extol_v a_o presumptuous_a faith_n by_o themselves_o invent_v our_o adversary_n do_v not_o only_o as_o i_o have_v now_o show_v overthrow_n or_o at_o the_o least_o weaken_v the_o principal_a ground_n of_o all_o religion_n but_o also_o in_o some_o sort_n destroy_v the_o very_a nature_n of_o faith_n itself_o by_o which_o we_o first_o come_v to_o a_o supernatural_a knowledge_n of_o god_n 5._o chap._n 5._o for_o whereas_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n i_o have_v prove_v that_o faith_n which_o concur_v to_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n and_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o spiritual_a life_n in_o this_o world_n to_o be_v a_o virtue_n infuse_v by_o god_n into_o our_o understanding_n by_o the_o help_n and_o force_v of_o which_o we_o give_v a_o most_o firm_a assent_n unto_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n to_o his_o church_n because_o they_o be_v so_o reveal_v the_o follower_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n i_o think_v partly_o because_o as_o i_o have_v note_v in_o the_o chapter_n next_o before_o they_o have_v weaken_v the_o authority_n of_o miracle_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a supernatural_a proof_n of_o such_o mystery_n debase_v and_o as_o it_o be_v despise_v this_o faith_n and_o in_o place_n of_o it_o magnify_v a_o new_a invention_n of_o man_n a_o chimerical_a kind_n of_o faith_n full_a of_o presumption_n which_o have_v neither_o ground_n in_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o in_o any_o approve_a author_n but_o be_v repugnant_a both_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o antiquity_n for_o they_o distinguish_v two_o especial_a kind_n of_o faith_n the_o one_o say_v they_o be_v historical_a 7._o see_v caluin_n institut_fw-la book_n 3_o §_o 9_o &_o 10._o calu._n l._n 3._o instit_fw-la c._n 2._o §_o 7._o by_o which_o we_o believe_v the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o incarnation_n passion_n death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o christ_n and_o other_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n the_o other_o be_v a_o justify_v faith_n which_o caluin_n define_v to_o be_v a_o steadfast_a and_o assure_a knowledge_n of_o god_n kindness_n or_o benevolence_n towards_o we_o which_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o free_a promise_n in_o christ_n be_v both_o reveal_v to_o our_o mind_n &_o seal_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n quadrage_n caluin_n ibid._n §_o 16._o see_v luth._o in_o serm_n domin_v 2._o quadrage_n in_o explicate_v this_o more_o at_o large_a the_o same_o caluin_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v none_o true_o faithful_a but_o he_o who_o be_v persuade_v with_o a_o sound_a assurednes_n that_o god_n be_v his_o merciful_a and_o love_a father_n do_v promise_v himself_o all_o thing_n upon_o trust_n of_o god_n goodness_n but_o he_o who_o lean_v upon_o the_o assuredness_n of_o his_o own_o salvation_n do_v
of_o error_n in_o all_o and_o consequent_o take_v from_o she_o all_o infallible_a authority_n and_o make_v she_o a_o fallible_a and_o uncertain_a ground_n chapter_n 4._o they_o reject_v all_o particular_a ground_n of_o faith_n above_o assign_v and_o prove_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n beside_o the_o holy_a scripture_n let_v we_o now_o descend_v to_o the_o particular_a ground_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o have_v above_o prove_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o although_o our_o adversary_n denial_n of_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o her_o assistance_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n on_o which_o the_o certainty_n of_o all_o such_o particular_a ground_n depend_v as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n not_o only_o that_o they_o reject_v they_o but_o also_o that_o according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n they_o have_v no_o infallible_a mean_n to_o know_v what_o article_n have_v be_v by_o god_n reveal_v to_o his_o church_n yet_o let_v we_o declare_v the_o matter_n more_o in_o particular_a and_o at_o large_a but_o concern_v unwritten_a tradition_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n yea_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n i_o need_v say_v nothing_o because_o they_o all_o with_o one_o consent_n and_o voice_n exclaim_v against_o these_o ground_n as_o superstitious_a frivolous_a and_o of_o no_o moment_n the_o difficulty_n therefore_o be_v only_o concern_v holy_a scripture_n general_a and_o provincial_a counsel_n and_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o father_n of_o which_o the_o first_o be_v challendged_a by_o they_o all_o the_o other_o two_o by_o some_o of_o they_o only_o i_o will_v begin_v with_o the_o two_o last_o and_o concern_v general_a counsel_n concilijs_fw-la counsel_n luther_n lib._n de_fw-la concilijs_fw-la luther_n do_v not_o only_o reprehend_v the_o first_o council_n hold_v by_o the_o apostle_n at_o jerusalem_n of_o which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 15._o the_o act._n 15._o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o affirm_v that_o the_o decree_n thereof_o bind_v no_o man_n in_o conscience_n but_o also_o call_v the_o father_n which_o afterward_o assemble_v themselves_o in_o counsel_n sycophant_n and_o flatterer_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o particular_a he_o call_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a celebrate_v in_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a emperor_n who_o our_o 69._o our_o barlow_n in_o his_o relation_n of_o the_o conference_n hold_v at_o hampt_a court_n p._n 69._o king_n by_o no_o mean_n will_v have_v appreach_v of_o popery_n bay_n straw_n wood_n stubble_n and_o demand_v whether_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v in_o counsel_n but_o to_o bind_v and_o burden_v his_o minister_n with_o impossible_a dangerous_a and_o unnecessary_a law_n such_o according_a to_o he_o be_v decree_v in_o that_o council_n i_o think_v he_o mean_v concern_v the_o chaste_a and_o single_a life_n of_o bishop_n and_o minister_n the_o like_a censure_n he_o pronounce_v against_o all_o other_o general_a counsel_n and_o conclude_v his_o discourse_n in_o that_o place_n that_o more_o light_n be_v bring_v to_o christian_a doctrine_n by_o that_o catechism_n which_o child_n learn_v then_o by_o all_o the_o counsel_n in_o another_o place_n he_o add_v that_o ecclesiae_fw-la that_o luth._o in_o prologo_fw-la li._n contra_fw-la statuta_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la he_o will_v not_o have_v his_o doctrine_n judge_v by_o any_o neither_o by_o bishop_n nor_o by_o all_o the_o angel_n but_o that_o be_v will_n by_o his_o doctrine_n judge_v the_o angel_n caluin_n give_v leave_v to_o every_o private_a man_n to_o examine_v the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n by_o the_o exact_a rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 9_o scripture_n caluin_n book_n 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 9_o §_o 8._o &_o 11._o see_v also_o §_o 9_o let_v no_o name_n say_v he_o or_o authority_n of_o counsel_n pastor_n bishop_n hinder_v we_o but_o that_o we_o may_v examine_v the_o spirit_n of_o all_o man_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o likewise_o call_v the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a 10._o nice_a idem_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la reformatione_fw-la opuscul_fw-la pag._n 480._o see_v he_o also_o book_n 4._o of_o his_o instit_fw-la chap._n 9_o §_o 10._o phanatice_n that_o be_v man_n fanatical_a or_o delude_v by_o the_o devil_n 1565._o devil_n bez._n in_o praefat_fw-la novi_fw-la test_n anno_o 1565._o beza_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o the_o best_a time_n such_o be_v partly_o the_o ambition_n of_o bishop_n partly_o their_o foolishness_n and_o ignorance_n that_o the_o very_a blind_a may_v perceive_v sathan_n very_o to_o have_v be_v precedent_n of_o their_o assembly_n the_o like_a censure_n be_v pronounce_v by_o musculus_fw-la 51._o musculus_fw-la vrban_n regi_fw-la 1._o part_n operum_fw-la de_fw-la eccl_n foe_fw-mi 51._o vrbanus_n regius_n and_o other_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n in_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n write_v thus_o 14._o thus_o confess_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o scotl._n print_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o harm_n of_o confess_v p._n 19_o see_v the_o say_a harmony_n of_o confession_n sect_n 1._o pag._n 14._o without_o just_a examinatin_n we_o do_v not_o receive_v whatsoever_o be_v obtrude_v unto_o man_n under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o general_a council_n for_o plain_a it_o be_v that_o as_o the_o man_n assemble_v be_v man_n so_o have_v some_o of_o they_o manifest_o err_v and_o that_o in_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n &_o importance_n so_o far_o then_o as_o the_o council_n prove_v the_o determination_n and_o commandment_n that_o in_o give_v by_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o god_n so_o soon_o do_v we_o reverence_v and_o embrace_n the_o same_o hitherto_o the_o confession_n of_o scotland_n out_o of_o which_o their_o word_n as_o also_o out_o of_o the_o like_a assertion_n of_o other_o i_o gather_v that_o our_o adversary_n common_o give_v no_o more_o creditte_n to_o general_a counsel_n and_o consequent_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o represent_v then_o be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o worst_a and_o mean_a man_n live_v yea_o then_o may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o devil_n himself_o for_o these_o may_v also_o be_v believe_v if_o they_o prove_v that_o true_a which_o they_o affirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o they_o all_o require_v as_o necessary_a before_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n be_v believe_v second_o i_o gather_v that_o according_a to_o their_o assertion_n we_o may_v likewise_o lawful_o examine_v these_o their_o sentence_n or_o decree_n whether_o they_o be_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n or_o no_o for_o they_o be_v also_o man_n subject_a to_o error_n and_o moreover_o because_o we_o find_v they_o not_o so_o as_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v already_o say_v we_o may_v also_o reject_v they_o as_o repugnant_a to_o the_o say_a scripture_n the_o like_a leave_n they_o give_v in_o like_a sort_n to_o those_o of_o their_o own_o company_n yea_o to_o every_o private_a man_n whatsoever_o concern_v all_o their_o canon_n and_o constitution_n wherefore_o their_o follower_n or_o subject_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reprehend_v according_a to_o these_o opinion_n and_o decree_n if_o they_o examine_v their_o sentence_n and_o canon_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o reject_v they_o if_o in_o their_o conscience_n according_a to_o their_o own_o judgement_n they_o find_v they_o not_o conformable_a to_o the_o same_o but_o what_o a_o absurd_a thing_n be_v it_o that_o a_o few_o minister_n shall_v presume_v to_o pronounce_v so_o severe_a a_o censure_n against_o such_o ancient_a venerable_a and_o learned_a assembly_n high_o of_o esteem_a by_o all_o true_a christian_n in_o all_o age_n even_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n whence_o will_v they_o have_v these_o error_n to_o have_v proceed_v certain_o they_o must_v needs_o attribute_v they_o either_o to_o ignorance_n or_o malice_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n assemble_v but_o be_v they_o either_o for_o number_n learning_n or_o piety_n to_o be_v compare_v with_o they_o they_o be_v not_o without_o doubt_n as_o will_v easy_o appear_v unto_o any_o learned_a man_n that_o shall_v with_o any_o difference_n read_v the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o view_v the_o work_n of_o both_o side_n neither_o have_v minister_n be_v cumber_v for_o the_o most_o part_n with_o wife_n child_n and_o such_o other_o impediment_n that_o opportunity_n of_o give_v themselves_o to_o study_v and_o devotion_n as_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n have_v who_o live_v a_o chaste_a and_o single_a life_n and_o give_v themselves_o altogether_o to_o spiritual_a affair_n and_o be_v common_o very_o holy_a man_n wherefore_o see_v that_o they_o also_o live_v near_o to_o the_o apostle_n day_n it_o be_v very_o probable_a yea_o certain_a that_o they_o better_a understand_v and_o know_v the_o
true_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o these_o new_a sectary_n do_v and_o see_v that_o their_o sanctity_n be_v so_o great_a malice_n can_v no_o way_n blind_v they_o very_o any_o indifferent_a man_n if_o the_o matter_n be_v put_v to_o his_o censure_n although_o those_o ancient_a father_n have_v enjoy_v no_o far_a warrant_n of_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n then_o these_o new_a gospeler_n do_v will_v rather_o imagine_v truth_n to_o be_v with_o they_o then_o with_o these_o but_o our_o adversary_n allege_v for_o themselves_o that_o every_o particular_a man_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n may_v err_v i_o answer_v that_o true_a it_o be_v that_o every_o particular_a man_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v except_v be_v subject_a to_o error_n but_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n judgement_n join_v with_o the_o assent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o a_o general_a council_n be_v infallible_a and_o in_o such_o a_o case_n can_v be_v erroneous_a and_o no_o general_a council_n be_v of_o supreme_a force_n without_o his_o confirmation_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o lawful_a general_a council_n can_v be_v false_a the_o reason_n wherefore_o the_o confirmation_n of_o all_o counsel_n depend_v so_o much_o of_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v because_o he_o be_v ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o the_o body_n must_v needs_o have_v his_o assent_n and_o confirmation_n before_o the_o constitution_n by_o it_o make_v be_v of_o force_n and_o certain_o know_v to_o be_v free_a from_o error_n and_o falsehood_n final_o our_o protestant_n of_o england_n concern_v general_a counsel_n have_v decree_v as_o follow_v 228._o follow_v article_n of_o faith_n agree_v upon_o in_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o year_n 1562._o and_o 1604._o art_n 21._o see_v fulk_n upon_o the_o rhen_n testament_n matthew_n 8_o 14._o whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o campion_n 4._o reason_n in_o english_a pa._n 110._o field_n book_n 4._o of_o the_o church_n chap_v 6._o pag._n 228._o general_n counsel_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v a_o assembly_n of_o man_n whereof_o all_o be_v not_o govern_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o word_n of_o god_n may_v err_v and_o sometime_o have_v err_v even_o in_o thing_n pertain_v unto_o god_n wherefore_o thing_n ordain_v by_o they_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v neither_o strength_n nor_o authority_n unless_o it_o may_v be_v declare_v that_o they_o be_v take_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o like_a censure_n be_v pronounce_v by_o their_o principal_a divine_n and_o m._n field_n tell_v we_o that_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n may_v interpret_v the_o scripture_n and_o by_o their_o authority_n suppress_v all_o they_o that_o shall_v gainsay_v such_o interpretation_n and_o subject_a every_o man_n that_o shall_v disobey_v such_o determination_n they_o consent_v upon_o to_o excommunication_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n out_o of_o which_o his_o assertion_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o according_a to_o the_o providence_n and_o wisdom_n of_o almighty_a god_n general_a counsel_n shall_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n in_o such_o matter_n for_o otherwise_o man_n may_v be_v force_v and_o that_o according_a to_o his_o ordinance_n to_o obey_v such_o general_a counsel_n err_v and_o propound_v false_a doctrine_n but_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o same_o field_n in_o another_o place_n conclude_v 342._o lib._n 4._o cap._n 5._o pag._n 204._o luther_n tome_n 2._o lib._n contra_fw-la regem_fw-la angliae_fw-la fol._n 342._o that_o counsel_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o great_a consequence_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n thus_o write_v luther_n in_o his_o book_n against_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o of_o england_n in_o the_o last_o place_n henry_n bring_v in_o for_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n here_o say_v i_o that_o by_o this_o my_o sentence_n be_v confirm_v for_o this_o be_v it_o which_o i_o say_v that_o the_o thomistical_a ass_n have_v nothing_o that_o they_o can_v bring_v forth_o but_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n and_o the_o ancient_a use_n but_o i_o as_o against_o the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n of_o man_n of_o angel_n of_o devil_n oppose_v not_o the_o ancient_a consent_n not_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n but_o the_o gospel_n the_o word_n of_o the_o one_o eternal_a majesty_n here_o i_o stand_v here_o i_o sit_v here_o i_o remain_v here_o i_o boast_v here_o i_o triumph_n here_o i_o insult_v over_o the_o say_n of_o man_n be_v they_o never_o so_o holy_a insomuch_o that_o i_o pass_v not_o if_o a_o thousand_o augustine_n a_o thousand_o tertullians_n do_v stand_v against_o i_o 5_o tome_n 5_o the_o like_a sentence_n he_o have_v in_o his_o famous_a commentary_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o his_o word_n be_v these_o some_o will_v say_v unto_o i_o the_o church_n during_o so_o many_o age_n have_v so_o think_v and_o teach_v all_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o doctor_n most_o holy_a man_n much_o great_a and_o more_o learned_a than_o thou_o be_v who_o be_v thou_o that_o dare_v dissent_v from_o all_o these_o and_o obtrude_v unto_o we_o a_o diverse_a doctrine_n when_o satan_n thus_o urge_v and_o conspire_v with_o flesh_n and_o reason_n the_o conscience_n it_o terrify_v and_o despair_v unless_o constant_o thou_o return_v to_o thyself_o and_o say_v whether_o cyprian_n ambrose_n augustine_n or_o peter_n paul_n and_o john_n yea_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n teach_v otherwise_o yet_o this_o i_o know_v for_o certain_a that_o i_o counsel_n not_o man_n humane_a but_o divine_a thing_n again_o no_o other_o doctrine_n ought_v to_o be_v deliver_v or_o hear_v in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n let_v other_o doctor_n or_o hearer_n together_o their_o doctrine_n be_v accurse_v hitherto_o luther_n confess_v as_o we_o see_v the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n to_o contrary_a his_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o reject_v their_o authority_n and_o obstinate_o persist_v and_o obdurate_v himself_o in_o his_o heretical_a opinion_n 107._o zuinglius_fw-la to_o 1._o in_o explanat_fw-la artic_a 64._o fol._n 107._o the_o same_o course_n run_v zuinglius_fw-la who_o discourse_v thus_o the_o papist_n say_v who_o shall_v discuss_v the_o controversy_n and_o dissension_n which_o be_v at_o this_o present_a in_o the_o church_n who_o shall_v judge_v of_o they_o who_o shall_v pronounce_v sentence_n i_o answer_v the_o word_n of_o god_n neither_o will_v we_o allow_v of_o any_o other_o judge_n they_o affirm_v we_o deny_v the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n who_o shall_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o controversy_n i_o say_v the_o one_o and_o only_a word_n of_o god_n but_o present_o thou_o begin_v to_o cry_v out_o the_o father_n the_o father_n for_o the_o father_n have_v so_o deliver_v and_o write_v thus_o but_o i_o relate_v to_o thou_o neither_o father_n nor_o mother_n but_o require_v the_o word_n by_o this_o only_a it_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n thus_o zuinglius_fw-la the_o opinion_n of_o caluin_n be_v consonant_a to_o these_o 38._o calu._n in_o praefat_fw-la instit_fw-la ad_fw-la regem_fw-la galiae_fw-la item_n book_n 3_o instit_fw-la chap_a 4._o §_o 38._o all_o thing_n say_v he_o discourse_v of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v we_o to_o serve_v we_o not_o to_o over-rule_v us._n again_o those_o thing_n which_o every_o foot_n occur_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o old_a writer_n or_o father_n touch_v satisfaction_n move_v i_o but_o little_a for_o i_o see_v that_o diverse_a of_o they_o i_o will_v say_v simple_o as_o it_o be_v almost_o all_o who_o work_n be_v extant_a either_o have_v err_v in_o this_o matter_n or_o have_v speak_v over_o crabed_o and_o hardly_o our_o english_a protestant_n have_v sufficient_o declare_v their_o opinion_n touch_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n by_o pronounce_v so_o hard_a a_o censure_n against_o general_a counsel_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v 92._o whitak_n contra_fw-la saunder_n pag._n 92._o hence_o whitaker_n one_o of_o their_o principal_a champion_n use_v this_o discourse_n if_o you_o argue_v say_v he_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n be_v they_o never_o so_o learned_a and_o ancient_a we_o yield_v no_o more_o to_o their_o word_n in_o cause_n of_o religion_n than_o we_o perceive_v to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o scripture_n neither_o think_v yourself_o to_o have_v prove_v any_o thing_n though_o you_o bring_v against_o we_o the_o whole_a swarm_n of_o father_n except_o that_o which_o they_o say_v be_v justify_v not_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o man_n but_o by_o god_n himself_o this_o be_v whitaker_n doctrine_n 159._o whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o campian_n 2._o reason_n p._n 70._o see_v he_o also_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o 6._o reason_n pag._n 159
testament_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o holy_a scripture_n and_o grant_v by_o our_o 9_o our_o melancht_a in_fw-it corpo_fw-it doctri_fw-la germa_n et_fw-fr in_o examine_v ordi_fw-la nand_n cap._n the_o definit_a etc._n etc._n oecolampad_n in_o isa_n 23_o 21._o aug._n lib._n 1._o ad_fw-la simplicianun_n quest_n 2._o lib._n the_o spirit_n et_fw-fr litt_v c._n 34._o freder_n staphil_n l._n the_o concord_n disci_fw-la luther_n petrus_n paladius_fw-la l._n de_fw-fr heres_fw-la caluin_n in_o inst_z contr_n liberti_n c._n 9_o adversary_n the_o prophet_n that_o be_v extraodinary_o send_v confirm_v their_o mission_n by_o miracle_n and_o why_o so_o if_o not_o to_o yield_v man_n sufficient_a prudent_a motive_n to_o believe_v they_o hence_o be_v these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n it_o be_v command_v that_o we_o believe_v to_o this_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o work_v well_o by_o love_n but_o who_o can_v believe_v except_o he_o be_v touch_v by_o some_o vocation_n that_o be_v by_o some_o testification_n or_o testimony_n of_o thing_n again_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n can_v believe_v by_o her_o freewill_n if_o there_o be_v no_o vocation_n or_o persuasion_n unto_o which_o it_o may_v believe_v hitherto_o saint_n augustine_n final_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o appear_v by_o the_o ordinary_a manner_n of_o proceed_v of_o god_n with_o mortal_a man_n which_o be_v not_o altogether_o by_o internal_a illumination_n as_o the_o swencfeldians_n libertine_n and_o some_o anabaptist_n dream_n but_o by_o some_o common_a and_o external_a rule_n and_o see_v that_o according_a to_o the_o apostle_n he_o require_v of_o we_o only_o then_o only_o rom._n 12_o 1._o field_n book_n 4._o chap_v 7._o §_o thus_o then_o a_o reasonable_a obsequy_n service_n or_o obedience_n it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v that_o he_o command_v we_o to_o believe_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o propound_v unto_o we_o and_o make_v credible_a by_o prudential_a motive_n in_o this_o sense_n i_o take_v field_n who_o tell_v we_o as_o i_o have_v partly_o set_v down_o before_o that_o three_o thing_n concur_v to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o whereof_o we_o be_v doubtful_a the_o light_n of_o divine_a understanding_n as_o that_o whereby_o we_o apprehend_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n the_o spirit_n as_o the_o author_n of_o this_o illumination_n and_o the_o reason_n and_o motive_n by_o force_n whereof_o the_o spirit_n induce_v move_v and_o persuade_v us._n and_o in_o particular_a he_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o stapleton_n to_o say_v that_o he_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n because_o the_o spirit_n move_v he_o so_o to_o believe_v but_o say_v it_o be_v moreover_o necessary_a that_o he_o declare_v those_o reason_n or_o motive_n by_o force_n whereof_o the_o spirit_n settle_v his_o mind_n in_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o thing_n he_o former_o doubt_v of_o some_o man_n perhaps_o will_v object_v that_o no_o miracle_n or_o at_o the_o least_o very_a few_o be_v now_o wrought_v in_o the_o world_n whereupon_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o follow_v according_a to_o this_o discourse_n that_o christian_a catholic_a religion_n be_v not_o now_o sufficient_o propound_v as_o credible_a i_o answer_v that_o although_o god_n do_v always_o cause_v his_o true_a religion_n to_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o any_o wise_a man_n may_v prudent_o embrace_v it_o and_o believe_v it_o true_a yet_o as_o be_v above_o insinuate_v he_o do_v not_o in_o every_o respect_n make_v it_o so_o credible_a as_o be_v in_o his_o power_n to_o do_v and_o that_o for_o our_o great_a merit_n &_o humiliation_n and_o from_o this_o it_o proceed_v that_o among_o christian_n miracle_n be_v not_o now_o so_o frequent_a as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o primative_a church_n because_o they_o have_v now_o not_o only_o other_o sufficient_a motive_n which_o may_v persuade_v all_o man_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o religion_n but_o also_o sufficient_a prudential_a reason_n and_o mark_n by_o which_o they_o may_v discern_v the_o true_a church_n from_o all_o false_a synagogue_n as_o i_o have_v partly_o declare_v before_o and_o will_v declare_v at_o large_a in_o my_o treatise_n of_o the_o definition_n and_o note_n of_o the_o church_n this_o then_o be_v thus_o prove_v let_v we_o behold_v what_o prudential_a argument_n our_o adversary_n bring_v to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v canonical_a by_o force_n of_o which_o the_o spirit_n induce_v move_v and_o persuade_v they_o to_o believe_v they_o field_n as_o i_o even_o now_o relate_v assign_v two_o motive_n of_o our_o belief_n which_o be_v cause_n of_o it_o in_o two_o distinct_a sort_n of_o thing_n the_o one_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n appear_v unto_o we_o the_o other_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n himself_o who_o we_o do_v most_o certain_o discern_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v preach_v unto_o us._n caluin_n seem_v to_o assign_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n which_o present_v itself_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o divine_a scripture_n rogers_n say_v the_o scripture_n carry_v a_o divine_a and_o sacred_a authority_n with_o they_o and_o agree_v in_o all_o point_n with_o other_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o that_o none_o of_o these_o motive_n be_v sufficient_a to_o persuade_v a_o prudent_a man_n that_o these_o book_n be_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o wisdom_n most_o certain_o to_o be_v account_v divine_a and_o canonical_a it_o be_v easy_o prove_v for_o first_o if_o they_o be_v so_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o every_o prudent_a man_n read_v these_o book_n by_o this_o only_o according_a to_o prudence_n shall_v be_v move_v to_o give_v every_o one_o of_o they_o this_o prerogative_n but_o this_o experience_n among_o our_o adversary_n themselves_n who_o be_v at_o variance_n touch_v some_o book_n whether_o they_o be_v canonical_a or_o no_o prove_v false_a therefore_o these_o motive_n be_v not_o sufficient_a be_v field_n book_n 4._o chap_v 7._o §_o there_o be_v moreover_o no_o man_n as_o field_n tell_v we_o prove_v a_o thing_n doubtful_a by_o that_o which_o be_v as_o much_o doubt_v of_o as_o itself_o for_o this_o say_v he_o be_v as_o if_o one_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v a_o lawgiver_n who_o authority_n be_v doubt_v of_o shall_v first_o make_v a_o law_n and_o publish_v his_o proclamation_n and_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o give_v himself_o power_n to_o make_v law_n his_o authority_n of_o make_v the_o first_o law_n be_v as_o much_o doubt_v of_o as_o the_o second_o well_o then_o this_o be_v suppose_v true_a let_v we_o see_v whether_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o such_o motive_n as_o be_v assign_v by_o our_o adversary_n move_v they_o as_o they_o say_v to_o believe_v the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o as_o obscure_v as_o the_o divine_a truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n itself_o and_o first_o this_o appear_v in_o those_o which_o be_v bring_v by_o rogers_n for_o it_o be_v even_o as_o obscure_v a_o matter_n and_o as_o hardly_o to_o be_v prove_v that_o general_o all_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n and_o every_o sentence_n of_o they_o carry_v a_o extraordinary_a or_o divine_a authority_n with_o they_o above_o all_o other_o as_o it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v canonical_a so_o be_v likewise_o their_o agreement_n with_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n wherefore_o let_v they_o pass_v let_v we_o behold_v whether_o this_o be_v not_o also_o true_a in_o such_o formal_a reason_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o according_a to_o caluin_n and_o field_n move_v we_o to_o believe_v and_o first_o whence_o proceed_v that_o evidence_n which_o field_n will_v have_v in_o some_o thing_n believe_v to_o appear_v unto_o we_o be_v the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n evident_a in_o themselves_o this_o he_o deni_v of_o some_o for_o opinion_n field_n book_n 4._o chapter_n 8._o §_o the_o opinion_n we_o confess_v say_v he_o that_o faith_n may_v right_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o firm_a assent_n without_o evidence_n of_o many_o of_o the_o thing_n believe_v in_o themselves_o but_o the_o medium_n by_o force_n whereof_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v must_v be_v evident_a unto_o we_o as_o durandus_fw-la do_v right_o demonstrate_v thus_o field_n but_o can_v he_o make_v it_o good_a that_o any_o such_o article_n be_v in_o themselves_o evident_a unto_o we_o as_o they_o be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o most_o of_o they_o yea_o almost_o all_o consider_v howsoever_o have_v not_o so_o much_o of_o themselves_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o understanding_n as_o evidence_n and_o certainty_n of_o credibility_n that_o be_v they_o appear_v not_o so_o certain_a and_o credible_a unto_o we_o as_o a_o prudent_a man_n will_v believe_v they_o setting_z aside_o the_o medium_n or_o mean_a supernatural_a by_o which_o they_o be_v propound_v but_o if_o we_o consider_v they_o
precise_o as_o they_o be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n they_o all_o have_v no_o other_o evidence_n then_o divine_a revelation_n as_o be_v prove_v before_o which_o be_v always_o obscure_a what_o then_o be_v this_o medium_n or_o mean_v according_a to_o field_n be_v it_o any_o humane_a conjecture_n motive_n or_o probability_n this_o can_v be_v according_a to_o his_o own_o doctrine_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o the_o chapter_n before_o nay_o in_o another_o place_n he_o tell_v we_o contention_n book_n 4._o chap._n 20._o §_o much_o contention_n that_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n win_v credit_n of_o themselves_o and_o yield_v sufficient_a satisfaction_n to_o all_o man_n of_o their_o divine_a truth_n and_o therefore_o he_o seem_v to_o exclude_v all_o external_a proof_n be_v it_o then_o any_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o thing_n themselves_o neither_o can_v this_o be_v say_v for_o every_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o thing_n themselves_o &_o belong_v to_o their_o essence_n be_v as_o obscure_a as_o the_o thing_n themselves_o be_v and_o consequent_o no_o such_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o thing_n themselves_o can_v be_v such_o a_o mean_a to_o manifest_v themselves_o unto_o us._n and_o what_o accident_n he_o will_v assign_v in_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n make_v they_o manifest_a unto_o we_o i_o can_v imagine_v second_o i_o can_v see_v how_o this_o assertion_n of_o field_n do_v agree_v with_o that_o his_o common_a principle_n 42._o field_n book_n 4._o chap._n 13.8_o book_n 3._o chap._n 42._o avouch_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o canon_n and_o ground_n of_o their_o belief_n and_o that_o they_o rest_v in_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o how_o can_v this_o be_v if_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n appear_v unto_o we_o be_v sometime_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o be_v in_o like_a sort_n by_o he_o aver_v but_o to_o make_v this_o discourse_n a_o little_a more_o manifest_a let_v we_o demand_v a_o question_n or_o two_o in_o particular_a of_o m._n field_n and_o see_v how_o he_o will_v resolve_v they_o according_a to_o his_o doctrine_n deliver_v i_o ask_v therefore_o of_o he_o why_o he_o believe_v there_o be_v three_o person_n and_o one_o god_n two_o nature_n in_o christ_n and_o one_o person_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n will_v he_o answer_v that_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n appear_v unto_o he_o be_v the_o formal_a cause_n of_o his_o faith_n or_o induce_v he_o to_o believe_v these_o mystery_n if_o he_o do_v not_o he_o contradict_v his_o own_o doctrine_n if_o he_o do_v he_o contradict_v both_o all_o sense_n and_o reason_n and_o also_o himself_o make_v the_o scripture_n the_o ground_n of_o faith_n except_o he_o affirm_v these_o mystery_n to_o be_v evident_a not_o in_o themselves_o but_o in_o the_o medium_n or_o mean_v by_o force_n whereof_o they_o be_v believe_v for_o which_o medium_n if_o he_o will_v be_v constant_a to_o himself_o he_o must_v assign_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o scripture_n he_o must_v say_v be_v believe_v through_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n himself_o who_o we_o do_v most_o certain_o discern_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v another_o cause_n of_o belief_n assign_v by_o he_o for_o such_o thing_n as_o we_o believe_v and_o do_v not_o know_v so_o that_o this_o authority_n of_o god_n be_v the_o last_o motive_n not_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o what_o other_o process_n he_o will_v make_v i_o can_v perceive_v but_o what_o do_v he_o and_o caluin_n understand_v by_o that_o other_o reason_n which_o he_o term_v the_o authority_n of_o god_n himself_o who_o we_o do_v certain_o discern_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v preach_v unto_o we_o and_o caluin_n the_o majesty_n of_o god_n which_o do_v present_v itself_o unto_o we_o what_o be_v this_o authority_n and_o majesty_n of_o god_n and_o how_o do_v we_o so_o certain_o discern_v it_o very_o for_o my_o part_n i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o know_v how_o to_o discern_v it_o as_o i_o can_v well_o imagine_v what_o they_o mean_v by_o it_o yet_o if_o i_o be_v not_o deceive_v they_o affirm_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n or_o his_o majesty_n be_v see_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o move_v we_o by_o a_o supernatural_a and_o most_o infallible_a assent_n to_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v his_o holy_a word_n but_o first_o this_o be_v say_v gratis_o and_o without_o any_o ground_n or_o reason_n for_o what_o authority_n or_o majesty_n can_v a_o man_n discern_v in_o such_o book_n as_o our_o adversary_n receive_v as_o canonical_a more_o than_o in_o those_o which_o they_o reject_v for_o example_n what_o appear_v to_o we_o more_o divine_a in_o the_o book_n of_o ecclesiastes_n then_o in_o the_o book_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la sure_o nothing_o much_o less_o so_o much_o as_o may_v be_v a_o infallible_a and_o know_v mean_a to_o move_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o one_o as_o divine_v and_o to_o reject_v the_o other_o as_o apocryphal_a moreover_o how_o do_v we_o know_v that_o this_o representation_n of_o divine_a majesty_n or_o this_o divine_a authority_n which_o as_o we_o conceive_v do_v represent_v itself_o unto_o we_o be_v not_o either_o some_o illusion_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o some_o strong_a imagination_n of_o our_o own_o proceed_n only_o from_o some_o affection_n which_o upon_o some_o other_o motive_n we_o bear_v to_o such_o and_o such_o book_n of_o scripture_n true_o we_o have_v great_a cause_n to_o fear_v that_o it_o may_v proceed_v from_o some_o such_o affection_n see_v that_o luther_n and_o most_o of_o all_o his_o lutheran_n confess_v all_o the_o sacramentary_n general_o to_o be_v deceive_v in_o such_o their_o apprehension_n concern_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n james_n the_o apocalypse_n of_o s._n john_n and_o other_o parcel_n of_o scripture_n and_o why_o not_o concern_v other_o as_o well_o as_o these_o unto_o which_o i_o add_v that_o they_o common_o make_v their_o doctrine_n a_o rule_n whereby_o to_o try_v which_o be_v scripture_n and_o which_o be_v not_o as_o i_o will_v demonstrate_v hereafter_o and_o appear_v by_o the_o cause_v assign_v by_o luther_n which_o move_v he_o to_o reject_v the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n james._n it_o may_v also_o be_v object_v against_o this_o their_o doctrine_n that_o of_o it_o it_o seem_v to_o follow_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v assure_v of_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o any_o other_o book_n of_o scripture_n then_o of_o those_o which_o he_o have_v read_v himself_o or_o hear_v other_o read_v for_o first_o no_o man_n can_v possible_o prove_v to_o another_o that_o in_o read_v such_o and_o such_o book_n he_o do_v discern_v in_o then_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n himself_o speak_v or_o that_o the_o divine_a majesty_n do_v in_o they_o present_v itself_o unto_o he_o wherefore_o unto_o this_o that_o a_o man_n may_v judge_v of_o holy_a scripture_n he_o must_v himself_o read_v or_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o sentence_n read_v and_o this_o he_o must_v do_v before_o he_o can_v have_v any_o faith_n for_o see_v that_o they_o make_v the_o scripture_n the_o rule_n and_o ground_n of_o their_o belief_n the_o scripture_n must_v first_o be_v know_v before_o they_o can_v believe_v and_o see_v that_o no_o one_o book_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v but_o such_o thing_n be_v disperse_v through_o all_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o know_v the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o consequent_o that_o he_o read_v or_o hear_v it_o all_o rehearse_v sentence_n by_o sentence_n and_o what_o a_o labyrinth_n be_v this_o how_o can_v the_o unlearned_a that_o can_v read_v do_v it_o nay_o how_o many_o protestant_n in_o the_o world_n have_v ever_o perform_v it_o wherefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o this_o rule_n or_o mean_v how_o to_o know_v holy_a scripture_n be_v neither_o easy_a plain_a certain_a nor_o universal_a perhaps_o it_o may_v be_v think_v by_o some_o that_o field_n assign_v the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n appear_v unto_o we_o in_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o formal_a cause_n of_o our_o belief_n concern_v their_o authority_n but_o this_o can_v be_v both_o because_o our_o belief_n concern_v their_o canonical_a authority_n seem_v to_o be_v concern_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o wit_n whether_o they_o be_v pen_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o no_o as_o also_o because_o a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o rehearse_v matter_n of_o fact_n which_o field_n deni_v to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n himself_o who_o we_o do_v certain_o discern_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n 15._o field_n book_n 4._o chap_v 15._o add_v likewise_o that_o by_o his_o confession_n
private_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o prophet_n ezechiel_n say_v joan._n say_v ezechielis_fw-la 13._o verse_n 3._o august_n tract_n 45._o in_o joan._n woe_n to_o the_o foolish_a prophet_n who_o follow_v their_o own_o spirit_n and_o see_v nothing_o final_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n as_o s._n augustine_n do_v testify_v boast_v of_o such_o illumination_n there_o be_v innumerable_a say_v he_o who_o do_v not_o only_o boast_v that_o they_o be_v videntes_fw-la or_o prophet_n but_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v illuminate_v or_o enlighten_v by_o christ_n but_o be_v heretic_n and_o thus_o much_o against_o the_o infallible_a truth_n of_o illumination_n in_o general_n let_v we_o now_o apply_v some_o of_o these_o general_a reason_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n by_o illumination_n in_o particular_a and_o also_o urge_v they_o a_o little_a further_o first_o therefore_o i_o demand_v whether_o this_o illumination_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n be_v common_a to_o all_o or_o particular_a to_o some_o if_o common_a to_o all_o it_o consequent_o follow_v that_o all_o man_n read_v the_o scripture_n be_v thus_o infallible_o and_o super-natural_o inspire_v of_o their_o truth_n but_o that_o all_o man_n be_v not_o thus_o general_o and_o infallible_o lead_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o such_o divine_a book_n it_o be_v apparent_a by_o our_o adversary_n dissension_n not_o only_o from_o the_o ancient_a father_n but_o also_o among_o themselves_o touch_v this_o very_a point_n for_o do_v none_o of_o the_o father_n judge_n such_o book_n canonical_a as_o all_o protestant_n common_o reject_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o they_o do_v for_o it_o be_v evident_a 1._o field_n book_n 4._o chap._n 23._o council_n carthag_n 3._o canon_n sess_v 47._o see_v also_o s._n aug._n de_fw-fr praedest_fw-la cap._n 14._o cap._n 8._o sect_n 1._o and_o plain_o gather_v out_o of_o field_n himself_o that_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o which_o as_o he_o true_o say_v s._n augustine_n be_v present_a number_v the_o book_n of_o tobias_n judith_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o of_o the_o maccabee_n in_o the_o canon_n do_v they_o also_o among_o themselves_o all_o admit_v and_o reject_v the_o same_o book_n nothing_o less_o luther_n and_o his_o lutheran_n reject_v some_o which_o caluin_n our_o english_a protestant_n and_o other_o avouch_v to_o be_v canonical_a and_o this_o shall_v at_o large_a be_v prove_v hereafter_o but_o they_o will_v say_v this_o inspiration_n be_v particular_a only_o to_o some_o that_o be_v enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n or_o as_o caluin_n insinuate_v only_o to_o the_o elect_a 5._o caluin_n instit_fw-la book_n 1._o chap._n 7._o §_o 5._o and_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v their_o common_a opinion_n against_o which_o i_o oppose_v first_o that_o of_o this_o will_v follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o certain_a rule_n in_o the_o church_n whereby_o all_o man_n may_v come_v to_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o god_n word_n which_o assertion_n be_v very_o absurd_a especial_o if_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n as_o they_o contend_v second_o the_o scripture_n yield_v we_o no_o warrant_n for_o a_o divine_a assurance_n of_o any_o such_o inspiration_n that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o in_o the_o church_n they_o will_v say_v that_o diverse_a sentence_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n plain_o approve_v it_o but_o the_o contrary_n be_v already_o show_v and_o beside_o this_o be_v to_o fall_v into_o a_o circle_n by_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n by_o divine_a inspiration_n or_o illumination_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o again_o by_o scripture_n three_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o this_o inspiration_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o be_v particular_a to_o some_o and_o not_o common_a to_o al._n four_o although_o we_o shall_v grant_v this_o to_o some_o yet_o no_o man_n can_v by_o any_o warrant_n of_o scripture_n or_o prudential_a ground_n assure_o know_v that_o he_o have_v such_o a_o inspiration_n especial_o consider_v first_o that_o diverse_a sectary_n have_v be_v deceive_v &_o false_o pretend_v such_o inspiration_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o contrariety_n nay_o i_o may_v further_o add_v that_o either_o all_o protestant_n be_v now_o deceive_v in_o their_o judgement_n concern_v certain_a book_n or_o else_o that_o s._n augustine_n with_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o carthage_n err_v touch_v they_o in_o time_n past_a as_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o be_v say_v a_o little_a before_o and_o no_o man_n will_v deny_v but_o a_o error_n in_o either_o of_o these_o give_v a_o man_n just_a cause_n to_o mistrust_v his_o own_o illumination_n for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o s._n augustine_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n as_o far_o forth_o as_o any_o sectary_n second_o his_o judgement_n may_v also_o grow_v doubtful_a out_o of_o this_o that_o the_o same_o man_n may_v have_v as_o they_o say_v a_o divine_a inspiration_n touch_v one_o book_n and_o be_v deceive_v touch_v another_o 48._o stock_n and_o whitaker_n in_o the_o answer_n to_o duraeus_n the_o first_o reason_n pag._n 48._o for_o so_o say_v stock_n out_o of_o whitaker_n who_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o reveal_v to_o all_o alike_o and_o that_o all_o have_v not_o the_o same_o measure_n of_o the_o spiritte_v out_o of_o which_o he_o draw_v a_o excuse_n of_o the_o lutheran_n if_o they_o believe_v well_o of_o some_o and_o reject_v not_o well_o other_o book_n of_o scripture_n and_o this_o likewise_o seem_v to_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o caluin_n above_o cite_v fiftlie_o other_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v who_o receive_v such_o a_o inspiration_n and_o consequent_o it_o only_o profit_v the_o man_n himself_o who_o have_v it_o and_o no_o other_o person_n this_o can_v be_v deny_v for_o luther_n boast_v of_o the_o spiritte_v as_o far_o forth_o as_o caluin_n yet_o they_o disagree_v concern_v the_o canonical_a book_n and_o be_v of_o different_a faith_n and_o what_o reason_n have_v we_o either_o to_o grant_v or_o deny_v this_o inspiration_n more_o to_o the_o one_o then_o to_o the_o other_o or_o what_o argument_n can_v be_v bring_v by_o the_o one_o which_o can_v be_v use_v by_o the_o other_o yea_o of_o this_o i_o infer_v further_o that_o neither_o of_o they_o have_v any_o such_o divine_a inspiration_n for_o see_v that_o both_o be_v not_o inspire_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o one_o of_o they_o have_v no_o strong_a proof_n for_o his_o inspiration_n then_o the_o other_o we_o ought_v to_o give_v no_o more_o credit_n to_o the_o one_o then_o to_o the_o other_o and_o see_v that_o we_o can_v believe_v they_o both_o we_o can_v according_o to_o reason_n credit_n either_o of_o they_o and_o in_o very_a deed_n neither_o of_o they_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v any_o certain_a reason_n or_o authority_n able_a to_o persuade_v any_o other_o that_o he_o have_v a_o supernatural_a inspiration_n show_v that_o this_o and_o that_o be_v holy_a scripture_n final_o of_o this_o whole_a opinion_n follow_v two_o other_o great_a inconvenience_n or_o absurdity_n first_o it_o give_v every_o man_n licence_n to_o reject_v and_o admit_v book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n out_o or_o into_o the_o canon_n at_o his_o pleasure_n according_a to_o his_o fancy_n for_o there_o be_v no_o sectary_n but_o may_v allege_v the_o majesty_n of_o the_o letter_n the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n contain_v in_o it_o pure_a eye_n and_o perfect_a sense_n the_o light_n of_o grace_n or_o internal_a inspiration_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o own_o particular_a opinion_n concern_v canonical_a scripture_n &_o that_o with_o as_o great_a probability_n as_o any_o other_o sectary_n be_v he_o lutheran_n sacramentary_a or_o of_o what_o other_o sect_n soever_o neither_o can_v this_o refel_v he_o unless_o they_o refute_v themselves_o in_o like_a sort_n if_o he_o deny_v these_o proof_n to_o any_o book_n whatsoever_o no_o man_n can_v convince_v he_o of_o error_n and_o of_o this_o may_v follow_v without_o any_o certainty_n almost_o as_o many_o opinion_n of_o this_o matter_n as_o there_o be_v head_n second_o by_o this_o allowance_n of_o a_o inspiration_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o letter_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o way_n be_v open_v to_o the_o allowance_n of_o private_a inspiration_n also_o for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o which_o be_v deny_v by_o field_n 16._o field_n book_n 4._o chap._n 16._o and_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n a_o very_a fountain_n of_o discord_n and_o confusion_n but_o what_o proof_n can_v they_o bring_v for_o the_o one_o which_o can_v be_v apply_v to_o yea_o not_o aswell_o prove_v the_o other_o and_o these_o reason_n as_o i_o imagine_v move_v the_o author_n before_o name_v to_o fly_v from_o this_o private_a inspiration_n to_o tradition_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o who_o in_o my_o
judgement_n i_o may_v add_v the_o whole_a protestant_a church_n of_o england_n who_o in_o their_o sixth_o article_n agree_v upon_o in_o their_o convocation_n of_o the_o year_n 1562._o and_o 1604._o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o holy_a scripture_n they_o understand_v those_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n of_o who_o authority_n be_v never_o any_o doubt_n in_o the_o church_n for_o they_o seem_v to_o make_v the_o authority_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n the_o mean_a and_o rule_v whereby_o to_o know_v the_o divine_a scripture_n 14._o field_n book_n 4._o chap._n 14._o yea_o field_n himself_o in_o another_o place_n tell_v we_o that_o we_o can_v know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v of_o god_n without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o such_o principal_a article_n as_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o which_o it_o may_v seem_v lawful_a to_o conclude_v against_o he_o that_o some_o other_o thing_n be_v necessary_a beside_o divine_a inspiration_n and_o other_o motive_n above_o by_o he_o assign_v the_o lutheran_n of_o wittenberg_n confess_v the_o church_n to_o have_v authority_n to_o judge_v of_o doctrine_n book_n harmony_n of_o confess_v sect_n 10._o p._n 332._o author_n of_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n c._n 15._o p._n 72._o see_v also_o c._n 19_o p._n 74._o 75._o bullenger_n in_o the_o praeface_n before_o that_o book_n according_a to_o that_o try_v the_o spiritte_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n another_o protestant_n in_o a_o treatise_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n high_o commend_v by_o bullenger_n plain_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o can_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n be_v it_o not_o that_o the_o church_n teach_v we_o and_o witness_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o thus_o much_o against_o this_o opinion_n but_o it_o may_v be_v here_o object_v against_o we_o that_o we_o also_o according_a to_o the_o second_o opinion_n deliver_v in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n concern_v the_o last_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n allow_v a_o supernatural_a gift_n or_o light_n by_o the_o concourse_n and_o help_n of_o which_o we_o firm_o assent_v to_o christian_a belief_n as_o reveal_v by_o god_n and_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v so_o earnest_o impugn_v the_o like_a assertion_n in_o other_o i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n concern_v this_o point_n for_o whereas_o i_o have_v show_v that_o they_o require_v a_o particular_a illumination_n and_o immediate_a instruction_n from_o god_n himself_o concern_v every_o particular_a book_n and_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n yea_o touch_v the_o exposition_n of_o every_o sentence_n as_o i_o will_v declare_v hereafter_o and_o by_o no_o prudential_a ground_n or_o argument_n of_o credibility_n be_v ordinary_o induce_v to_o this_o persuasion_n but_o see_v that_o diverse_a of_o their_o own_o company_n and_o those_o of_o the_o principal_a think_v themselves_o to_o be_v inspire_v have_v err_v have_v rather_o according_a to_o prudence_n just_a cause_n not_o to_o stand_v upon_o such_o illumination_n we_o assign_v the_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o common_a guide_n and_o general_a director_n and_o so_o require_v not_o a_o particular_a instruction_n for_o the_o belief_n of_o this_o and_o that_o particular_a matter_n but_o have_v believe_v the_o say_v general_a guide_n of_o it_o receive_v infallible_a and_o divine_a instruction_n what_o particulerlie_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v neither_o do_v we_o this_o without_o any_o prudential_a motive_n or_o credible_a reason_n but_o induce_v thereunto_o by_o most_o strong_a argument_n of_o credibility_n 2._o r●chardus_fw-la de_fw-la s._n victore_fw-la l._n 1._o de_fw-la trinit_fw-la cap._n 2._o insomuch_o as_o we_o may_v well_o say_v with_o richardus_fw-la de_fw-la sansto_fw-la victore_fw-la that_o if_o we_o be_v deceive_v god_n have_v deceive_v us._n neither_o be_v we_o by_o this_o persuade_v arrogantlie_o to_o follow_v a_o private_a rule_n which_o be_v a_o fountain_n of_o dissension_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o usual_a proceed_n of_o god_n but_o humble_o to_o submit_v ourselves_o and_o our_o understanding_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_a guide_n which_o be_v a_o preservative_n of_o unity_n and_o according_a to_o the_o common_a course_n of_o that_o heavenly_a king_n but_o before_o i_o pass_v from_o this_o matter_n i_o must_v needs_o have_v a_o word_n or_o two_o with_o m._n field_n in_o particular_a who_o require_v more_o than_o humane_a inducement_n or_o motive_n as_o reason_n by_o force_n whereof_o we_o be_v persuade_v first_o to_o believe_v 8._o field_n book_n 4._o chap._n 7._o &_o 8._o and_o seem_v to_o require_v a_o divine_a reason_n or_o testimony_n convince_a that_o which_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v of_o divine_a authority_n and_o so_o to_o impugn_v the_o first_o opinion_n of_o catholic_n concern_v the_o last_o resolution_n of_o faith_n 6._o part_n 1._o chap._n 7._o sect_n 6._o deliver_v in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n for_o whereas_o the_o follower_n of_o that_o opinion_n assign_v humane_a motive_n as_o the_o first_o inducement_n to_o our_o belief_n or_o as_o cause_n why_o we_o first_o accept_v of_o the_o same_o and_o bring_v no_o other_o external_a proof_n that_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v reveal_v by_o god_n opinion_n book_n 4._o chap._n 8._o §_o the_o opinion_n he_o exact_v of_o we_o a_o divine_a proof_n of_o this_o these_o be_v his_o word_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o ordinary_a papist_n be_v that_o the_o thing_n pertain_v to_o our_o faith_n be_v believe_v because_o god_n reveal_v and_o deliver_v they_o to_o be_v so_o as_o we_o be_v require_v to_o believe_v but_o that_o we_o know_v not_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v any_o such_o thing_n but_o by_o humane_a conjecture_n and_o probability_n so_o weak_a do_v they_o make_v our_o faith_n to_o be_v ground_v thus_o field_n concern_v which_o his_o imputation_n i_o must_v first_o request_v my_o reader_n if_o he_o be_v any_o thing_n move_v by_o these_o his_o word_n to_o turn_v to_o the_o explication_n and_o proof_n of_o the_o catholic_a opinion_n set_v down_o before_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n 6._o chapt._n 7._o sect_n 6._o because_o i_o think_v it_o needless_a to_o repeat_v one_o thing_n twice_o second_o i_o can_v but_o wish_v he_o also_o to_o note_n how_o diverse_o field_n report_v our_o opinion_n for_o although_o he_o plain_o here_o affirm_v that_o our_o ordinary_a opnion_n be_v that_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v believe_v because_o god_n reveal_v and_o deliver_v they_o to_o be_v so_o yet_o in_o another_o place_n he_o write_v thus_o our_o adversary_n fall_v into_o two_o dangerous_a error_n the_o first_o 6._o book_n 4._o c._n 6._o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v regula_n fidei_fw-la et_fw-la ratio_fw-la credendi_fw-la the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o we_o believe_v the_o second_o be_v that_o the_o church_n may_v make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o like_v as_o he_o himself_o in_o the_o word_n even_o now_o allege_v free_v we_o from_o the_o first_o of_o these_o dangerous_a error_n adversary_n book_n 4._o chap._n 12._o §_o our_o adversary_n so_o likewise_o in_o another_o place_n he_o free_v we_o from_o the_o second_o but_o as_o concern_v my_o present_a purpose_n out_o of_o his_o aforesaid_a word_n i_o gather_v that_o if_o he_o will_v not_o fall_v into_o the_o same_o fault_n for_o which_o he_o blame_v we_o he_o must_v not_o only_o assign_v such_o a_o divine_a formal_a cause_n of_o his_o belief_n concern_v every_o point_n as_o we_o teach_v the_o revelation_n of_o god_n to_o be_v but_o also_o add_v some_o divine_a proof_n prove_v this_o formal_a reason_n to_o be_v divine_a and_o not_o only_o humane_a probability_n and_o what_o such_o divine_a proof_n do_v he_o assign_v sure_o none_o that_o i_o can_v find_v he_o tell_v we_o in_o deed_n that_o in_o some_o thing_n the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n appear_v unto_o we_o they_o book_n 4._o chap._n 8._o §_o thus_o they_o and_o in_o other_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n discern_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o formal_a cause_n of_o their_o faith_n or_o induce_v they_o to_o believe_v but_o i_o find_v no_o divine_a proof_n no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o wise_a reason_n i_o add_v moreover_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o foolish_a reason_n bring_v neither_o for_o the_o one_o nor_o for_o the_o other_o nay_o he_o express_o tell_v we_o etc._n book_n 4._o chap._n 20._o §_o much_o contention_n see_v also_o chap_v 7._o §_o thus_o then_o book_n 4._o chap._n 7._o §_o sure_o see_v hin_n also_o §_o there_o be_v etc._n etc._n that_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n win_v credit_n
caluin_n that_o of_o s._n james_n at_o jerusalem_n in_o persuade_v s._n paul_n to_o purify_v himself_o according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n in_o the_o etc._n the_o see_v also_o the_o same_o caluin_n touch_v s._n paulin_n 2._o cor_fw-la cap._n 1._o &_o s._n james_n in_o cap._n 21._o act._n act._n 21._o v._n 15._o etc._n etc._n temple_n and_o last_o they_o accuse_v s._n paul_n of_o error_n in_o yield_v to_o the_o persuasion_n of_o s._n james._n the_o same_o be_v affirm_v by_o brentius_n &_o diverse_a other_o concern_v s._n peter_n and_o james_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n concilijs_fw-la jerusalem_n brent_n in_o apolog_n confess_v wittenberg_n c._n de_fw-fr concilijs_fw-la both_o s._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o and_o barnabas_n also_o after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n receive_v and_o together_o with_o they_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n err_v galat._n 2._o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v other_o sectary_n 22._o sectary_n bullenger_n in_o apocalip_n 19_o &_o 22._o bullenger_n have_v the_o like_a stuff_n touch_v s._n john_n do_v not_o also_o beza_n and_o our_o english_a protestant_n themselves_o seem_v to_o confess_v that_o 36_o that_o luc._n 3._o v._n 36_o s._n luke_n in_o his_o gospel_n err_v in_o make_v arphaxad_n the_o father_n of_o cainan_n and_o cainan_n of_o sale_n whereas_o in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n arphaxad_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v the_o father_n of_o sale_n for_o if_o s._n luke_n do_v not_o err_v why_o do_v chur._n do_v beza_n in_o his_o translat_n our_o protestant_n in_o their_o bible_n print_v anno_fw-la 1595._o authorize_v to_o be_v read_v in_o chur._n they_o notwithstanding_o that_o all_o copy_n both_o latin_a and_o greek_a in_o this_o accord_n thrust_v out_o of_o the_o text_n these_o word_n who_o be_v of_o cainan_n and_o make_v s._n luke_n say_v that_o arphaxad_n be_v the_o father_n of_o sale_n add_v unto_o this_o that_o 5._o that_o musculus_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la communibus_fw-la cap._n de_fw-fr justificat_fw-la num_fw-la 5._o musculus_fw-la no_o mean_a sectary_n to_o the_o catholic_n object_v the_o authority_n of_o s._n james_n against_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o make_v this_o answer_n that_o he_o whosoever_o he_o be_v although_o the_o brother_n of_o christ_n and_o a_o pillar_n among_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o great_a apostle_n above_o measure_n as_o 12._o as_o gal._n 2._o v._n 9_o 2._o cor._n 12_o 12._o s._n paul_n say_v can_v prejudice_v the_o truth_n of_o only_a faith_n 64_o faith_n molinae_fw-la in_o unione_fw-la quat_n euang_n par_fw-fr 64_o another_o of_o they_o testify_v that_o certain_a of_o his_o learned_a brethren_n limit_v and_o restrain_v those_o word_n of_o christ_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o that_o christ_n only_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o his_o word_n only_o be_v to_o be_v preach_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v subject_a to_o error_n in_o go_v beyond_o their_o commission_n and_o therefore_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v hear_v but_o when_o they_o relate_v unto_o we_o the_o very_a word_n of_o christ_n thus_o he_o write_v upon_o the_o say_a sentence_n these_o word_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o limit_v that_o christ_n only_o be_v hear_v that_o be_v that_o his_o word_n only_o be_v preach_v as_o most_o learned_a philip_n melancthon_n expound_v etc._n etc._n for_o so_o expound_v john_n brentius_n say_v that_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o speak_v not_o of_o all_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n whatsoever_o but_o of_o the_o prescribe_a commandment_n of_o their_o embassage_n thus_o carolus_n molinaeus_n from_o this_o opinion_n 7._o opinion_n cal._n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 8._o §_o 4._o &_o 7._o caluin_n himself_o seem_v not_o much_o to_o dissent_v who_o word_n be_v these_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o very_a name_n show_v how_o much_o be_v permit_v they_o in_o their_o office_n that_o be_v if_o they_o be_v apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o babble_v what_o they_o please_v but_o shall_v deliver_v true_o his_o commandment_n by_o who_o they_o be_v send_v and_o soon_o after_o he_o plain_o insinuate_v 2._o modrenius_fw-la lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 2._o that_o he_o will_v have_v christ_n only_o hear_v further_o one_o fricius_n a_o very_a learned_a protestant_n tell_v we_o that_o although_o he_o shall_v grant_v that_o s._n james_n give_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n only_o yet_o that_o his_o authority_n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v see_v that_o christ_n say_v eat_v and_o drink_v 5._o clebetius_fw-la in_o victoria_fw-la veritatis_fw-la et_fw-la ruina_fw-la papatus_fw-la saxoni_fw-la argumento_fw-la 5._o clebetius_fw-la one_o of_o the_o chief_a minister_n of_o the_o county_n palatine_n of_o rhine_n grant_v to_o his_o adversary_n that_o s._n mathewe_n and_o s._n mark_v in_o their_o gospel_n contradict_v s._n luke_n but_o say_v that_o he_o have_v two_o against_o one_o and_o that_o s._n luke_n be_v not_o present_a at_o the_o last_o supper_n concern_v the_o history_n of_o which_o the_o controversy_n be_v between_o he_o &_o his_o adversary_n as_o s._n matthew_n be_v and_o therefore_o that_o he_o deserve_v less_o credit_n final_o zuinglius_fw-la being_n impugn_a for_o deny_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a &_o press_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o father_n especial_o of_o s._n chrisostome_n &_o s._n augustine_n who_o derive_v this_o custom_n from_o the_o apostle_n answer_v thus_o 10._o zuing._n tom_n 1._o epicherae_fw-la de_fw-fr can_v missae_fw-la fol._n 186._o see_v he_o also_o tom_n 2._o in_o eleuch_n count_v anabap_n foe_fw-mi 10._o if_o it_o be_v so_o as_o augustine_n &_o chrisostome_n report_n i_o think_v that_o the_o apostle_n suffer_v certain_a to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a for_o no_o other_o cause_n then_o to_o condescend_v to_o their_o infirmity_n hitherto_o zuinglius_fw-la in_o which_o word_n he_o confess_v that_o the_o apostle_n wilful_o suffer_v some_o to_o err_v which_o can_v not_o be_v do_v without_o error_n in_o themselves_o and_o out_o of_o all_o these_o assertion_n of_o our_o adversary_n in_o which_o they_o either_o accuse_v the_o writer_n of_o holy_a scripture_n of_o error_n or_o make_v they_o subject_a thereunto_o i_o infer_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n may_v contain_v error_n although_o we_o shall_v grant_v it_o to_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n of_o christ_n but_o let_v we_o also_o add_v that_o although_o we_o shall_v grant_v they_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n can_v not_o err_v in_o pen_v these_o sacred_a book_n yet_o that_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n for_o they_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n since_o their_o day_n have_v not_o either_o through_o negligence_n or_o malice_n be_v corrupt_v for_o have_v not_o the_o catholic_n their_o enemy_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n the_o keep_n of_o it_o for_o the_o space_n of_o diverse_a hundred_o of_o year_n how_o know_v they_o then_o that_o the_o say_v catholic_n to_o serve_v their_o own_o turn_n have_v not_o corrupt_v it_o sure_o they_o confess_v their_o own_o brother_n to_o have_v falsify_v it_o within_o few_o year_n in_o diverse_a place_n wherefore_o one_o sect_n reject_v the_o translation_n of_o another_o do_v they_o then_o think_v we_o and_o our_o predecessor_n more_o sincere_a than_o they_o be_v themselves_o perhaps_o some_o ignorant_a man_n will_v say_v that_o it_o have_v be_v always_o in_o the_o custody_n of_o those_o of_o their_o religion_n but_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o can_v possible_o assign_v any_o succession_n of_o man_n of_o their_o profession_n that_o can_v always_o keep_v it_o i_o demand_v also_o if_o any_o man_n will_v needs_o say_v that_o there_o be_v such_o man_n although_o invisible_a in_o the_o world_n and_o mention_v off_o by_o no_o author_n of_o any_o one_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n day_n whether_o they_o be_v lutheran_n zwinglians_n or_o caluinist_n or_o of_o what_o other_o sect_n if_o they_o be_v lutheran_n how_o do_v the_o zwinglians_n caluinist_n and_o other_o sectary_n know_v that_o they_o keep_v it_o sincere_o and_o true_o if_o they_o be_v zwinglians_n how_o do_v the_o lutheran_n know_v the_o same_o the_o like_a question_n i_o demand_v concern_v other_o sectary_n and_o none_o of_o they_o i_o think_v will_v be_v so_o absurd_a as_o to_o say_v that_o all_o these_o sect_n have_v ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n but_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o they_o do_v not_o plain_o confess_v that_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n itself_o have_v be_v corrupt_v 1._o beza_n in_o praefat_fw-la novi_fw-la test_n anno_o 1556._o et_fw-la annota_fw-la in_o 1._o luc._n v._n 1._o although_o beza_n prefer_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a edition_n which_o we_o use_v before_o all_o other_o translation_n and_o confess_v that_o the_o old_a interpreter_n translate_v very_o religious_o yet_o both_o he_o and_o all_o the_o professor_n of_o
it_o use_v the_o word_n congregation_n but_o in_o the_o late_a edition_n since_o that_o they_o begin_v to_o have_v a_o certain_a form_n of_o a_o church_n this_o fault_n be_v amend_v second_o to_o make_v weak_a the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n wheresoever_o in_o the_o scripture_n speech_n be_v of_o evil_a tradition_n they_o translate_v the_o greek_a word_n true_o tradition_n but_o when_o mention_n be_v of_o apostolic_a tradition_n they_o can_v endure_v this_o word_n but_o force_v the_o same_o greek_a word_n to_o signify_v ordinance_n instruction_n preach_n or_o institution_n yea_o they_o translate_v tradition_n in_o ill_a part_n where_o it_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o greek_a for_o example_n the_o apostle_n say_v colos_n 2._o vers_fw-la 20._o according_a to_o the_o greek_a why_o do_v you_o yet_o decree_n they_o translate_v why_o be_v you_o yet_o lead_v with_o tradition_n and_o in_o a_o other_o edition_n 1595._o bible_n 1600._o 1595._o why_o be_v you_o yet_o burden_a with_o tradition_n three_o against_o the_o honour_n of_o image_n they_o translate_v the_o greek_a word_n which_o signify_v idolatry_n and_o a_o idolater_n worship_v of_o image_n and_o a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n 1562._o 2._o cor._n 6_o 16._o coloss_n 3._o v._n 5._o &_o ephes_n 5_o 5._o bible_n 1577._o 1._o cor._n 10._o bible_n 1562._o thus_o they_o make_v the_o apostle_n say_v how_o agree_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n with_o image_n covetousness_n be_v worship_v of_o image_n be_v not_o worshipper_n of_o image_n etc._n etc._n i_o add_v also_o that_o sometime_o when_o neither_o the_o word_n idol_n nor_o image_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o text_n they_o thrust_v it_o in_o by_o force_n as_o rom._n 11._o vers_fw-la 4._o in_o steed_n of_o baal_n they_o translate_v baal_n image_n also_o 2._o paral._n 36._o for_o 8._o they_o add_v these_o word_n carve_v image_n which_o be_v lay_v to_o their_o charge_n to_o the_o text_n but_o all_o these_o fault_n be_v amend_v in_o the_o late_a edition_n etc._n bible_n 1595._o gen._n 1._o v._n 27._o exod._n 25.3_o reg._n 6._o etc._n etc._n and_o not_o without_o cause_n for_o if_o every_o image_n be_v a_o idol_n and_o every_o idol_n a_o image_n we_o may_v say_v that_o god_n create_v man_n according_a to_o his_o idol_n we_o may_v call_v such_o image_n as_o be_v use_v in_o the_o old_a law_n idol_n and_o final_o term_v the_o image_n or_o picture_n of_o a_o man_n the_o idol_n of_o a_o man_n which_o kind_n of_o speech_n be_v not_o tolerable_a four_o against_o purgatory_n limbus_n patrum_fw-la and_o the_o descent_n of_o christ_n into_o hell_n they_o make_v the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a word_n which_o signify_v hell_n signify_v grave_a as_o for_o example_n with_o beza_n they_o read_v act._n 2._o vers_fw-la 27._o thou_o shall_v not_o leave_v my_o soul_n in_o the_o grave_n 89_o psal_n 15._o v._n 10_o bible_n 1600._o bible_n 1595._o 1600._o see_v parkes_n in_o his_o apology_n concern_v christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n &_o in_o his_o ans_fw-fr to_z lim_z boma_v print_v a_o 1607_o according_a to_o their_o account_n psal_n 86.49_o &_o 89_o this_o likewise_o be_v correct_v in_o the_o bible_n of_o the_o year_n 1595._o also_o gen._n 37._o v._n 35._o they_o make_v the_o patriarch_n jacob_n say_v i_o will_v go_v down_o into_o the_o grave_n to_o my_o son_n mourning_n whereas_o in_o like_a sort_n the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a word_n signify_v hell_n and_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o can_v not_o think_v it_o possible_a that_o he_o shall_v go_v down_o into_o the_o grave_n to_o his_o son_n because_o he_o think_v he_o devour_v of_o wild_a beast_n not_o bury_v the_o same_o corruption_n be_v sound_a in_o diverse_a other_o place_n as_o psalm_n 86._o v._n 13._o where_o they_o read_v 1595._o read_v bible_n 1579._o 1600._o correct_v in_o the_o bible_n of_o the_o year_n 1595._o thou_o have_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o low_a grave_n psal_n 48._o vers_fw-la 15._o where_o they_o read_v thou_o shall_v deliver_v my_o soul_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o grave_n osee_n 13._o vers_fw-la 14._o where_o they_o read_v o_o grave_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o destruction_n and_o in_o sundry_a other_o place_n this_o notwithstanding_o in_o 144._o in_o see_v other_o such_o corruption_n as_o these_o be_v recite_v and_o sharp_o reprehend_v by_o carlisle_n a_o man_n of_o the_o english_a church_n in_o his_o book_n that_o christ_n go_v not_o down_o into_o hell_n fol._n 144._o other_o place_n as_o proverb_n 15._o ver_fw-la 24._o etc._n etc._n where_o speech_n be_v of_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a they_o translate_v the_o same_o word_n hell_n five_o to_o bereave_v the_o saint_n of_o their_o honour_n which_o from_o mortal_a man_n be_v due_a unto_o they_o they_o false_o translate_v the_o 17._o verse_n of_o the_o 138._o psalm_n for_o whereas_o we_o read_v thy_o friend_n o_o god_n be_v become_v exceed_o honourable_a their_o princedom_n be_v exceed_o strengthen_v they_o turn_v it_o thus_o 138._o bible_n 1595._o psal_n 138._o how_o dear_a therefore_o be_v thy_o counsel_n unto_o i_o o_o god_n o_o how_o great_a be_v the_o sum_n of_o they_o but_o the_o hebrew_n make_v for_o our_o translation_n as_o every_o man_n that_o understand_v that_o tongue_n may_v see_v especial_o by_o the_o last_o word_n which_o word_n for_o word_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v translate_v how_o be_v the_o head_n or_o princedom_n of_o they_o strengthen_v again_o hebr._n 11._o vers_fw-la 21._o according_a to_o the_o greek_a we_o read_v by_o faith_n jacob_n die_v bless_v every_o one_o of_o the_o son_n of_o joseph_n and_o adore_v the_o top_n of_o his_o rod_n 1595._o bible_n 1600._o some_o thing_n better_o in_o the_o bible_n 1595._o luke_n 1._o v._o 28._o bible_n 1600._o 1595._o they_o translate_v the_o last_o word_n thus_o and_o lean_v on_o the_o end_n of_o his_o staff_n worship_v god_n in_o which_o translation_n they_o add_v two_o word_n to_o the_o text_n lean_v and_o god_n and_o turn_v the_o sense_n upsidowne_a i_o add_v also_o their_o translation_n of_o those_o word_n haile_o full_a of_o grace_n for_o which_o they_o read_v haile_o thou_o that_o be_v free_o belove_v and_o haile_o thou_o that_o be_v in_o high_a favour_n section_n the_o five_o of_o their_o corruption_n against_o inherent_a justice_n justification_n by_o good_a work_n merit_n of_o good_a work_n and_o keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o in_o defence_n of_o their_o special_a faith_n vain_a security_n etc._n etc._n and_o against_o freewill_n and_o merit_n to_o prove_v their_o imputative_a justice_n against_o inherent_a justice_n first_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 5._o vers_fw-la 18._o therefore_o as_o the_o offence_n of_o one_o unto_o all_o man_n to_o condemnation_n so_o also_o by_o the_o justice_n of_o one_o unto_o all_o man_n to_o justification_n of_o life_n 1600._o bible_n 1595._o worse_a in_o the_o bible_n 1600._o they_o read_v thus_o likewise_o then_o as_o by_o the_o sin_n of_o one_o sin_n come_v on_o all_o man_n to_o condemnation_n even_o so_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o one_o good_a come_v upon_o all_o man_n to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o life_n in_o which_o their_o translation_n they_o add_v four_o word_n to_o the_o text_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o make_v he_o seem_v to_o say_v that_o all_o man_n be_v true_o sinner_n and_o none_o true_o just_a but_o so_o repute_v ephes_n 1._o vers_fw-la 6._o for_o gratify_v they_o read_v 1600._o bible_n 1600._o make_v accept_v luke_n 1._o vers_fw-la 28._o for_o full_a of_o grace_n they_o translate_v free_o belove_v and_o in_o high_a favour_n dan._n 6._o vers_fw-la 22._o whereas_o daniel_n according_a to_o the_o chaldee_n greek_n and_o latin_a say_v justice_n be_v find_v in_o i_o they_o make_v he_o say_v 1595._o bible_n 1600._o 1595._o my_o justice_n or_o unguiltinesse_n according_a to_o a_o other_o translation_n be_v find_v out_o before_o he_o the_o like_a corruption_n may_v be_v see_v 2._o cor._n 5._o vers_fw-la 21._o to_o prove_v that_o good_a work_n do_v in_o state_n of_o grace_n concur_v not_o to_o our_o justification_n and_o that_o we_o reap_v no_o grace_n by_o observe_v of_o the_o commandment_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n to_o signify_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n use_v in_o diverse_a place_n the_o word_n justification_n and_o justice_n because_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n be_v justification_n and_o justice_n and_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v always_o correspondent_a to_o the_o same_o they_o nevertheless_o in_o all_o such_o place_n suppress_v the_o very_a name_n of_o justification_n and_o use_v the_o word_n ordinance_n or_o statute_n 1600._o bible_n 1595._o 1600._o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o psalm_n 118._o in_o diverse_a verse_n luke_n 1._o vers_fw-la 6._o rom._n 2._o vers_fw-la 26._o etc._n etc._n to_o this_o end_n also_o they_o avoid_v in_o their_o translation_n the_o word_n just_a and_o call_v a_o just_a
of_o their_o belief_n be_v not_o in_o express_a term_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o whole_a bible_n yea_o that_o the_o text_n of_o their_o own_o bibles_n make_v more_o for_o we_o than_o it_o do_v for_o they_o out_o of_o which_o i_o may_v well_o infer_v that_o they_o build_v not_o upon_o the_o letter_n contain_v in_o their_o own_o book_n but_o upon_o their_o own_o collection_n which_o every_o private_a man_n make_v according_a to_o his_o own_o fancy_n section_n the_o second_o the_o same_o argument_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o protestant_n concern_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o some_o word_n of_o scripture_n allege_v for_o our_o catholic_a doctrine_n touch_v justification_n in_o the_o section_n before_o notwithstanding_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n cite_v for_o we_o catholic_n be_v most_o plain_a yet_o it_o may_v be_v some_o follower_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n will_v imagine_v that_o we_o wrest_v they_o to_o a_o sense_n improper_a and_o in_o the_o primative_a age_n of_o the_o church_n unheard_a off_o contrariwise_o that_o those_o of_o his_o belief_n deliver_v the_o true_a literal_a and_o ancient_a exposition_n of_o the_o same_o now_o therefore_o to_o make_v the_o force_n of_o the_o reason_n bring_v more_o strong_a i_o add_v that_o i_o can_v easy_o prove_v even_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o that_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n in_o these_o controversy_n mention_v and_o other_o according_a to_o the_o proper_a sense_n thereof_o and_o the_o tradition_n and_o practice_n of_o all_o former_a christian_n be_v on_o our_o side_n not_o on_o they_o but_o if_o i_o shall_v here_o declare_v this_o to_o be_v true_a in_o every_o particular_a point_n i_o shall_v be_v over_o long_o wherefore_o i_o will_v exemplify_v only_o in_o one_o or_o two_o of_o the_o principal_a by_o which_o my_o reader_n may_v easy_o perceive_v what_o may_v be_v do_v concern_v the_o rest_n 382._o luther_n to_o 5._o in_o cap._n 5._o ad_fw-la galat._n f._n 382._o and_o first_o what_o article_n of_o religion_n by_o these_o sectary_n be_v esteem_v above_o that_o of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n luther_n himself_o write_v thus_o whoso_o ever_o fall_v from_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o become_v ignorant_a of_o god_n and_o be_v a_o idolater_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v all_o one_o whether_o he_o return_v to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o worship_v of_o idol_n all_o be_v one_o whether_o he_o be_v a_o monk_n a_o turk_n a_o jew_n or_o a_o anabaptist_n for_o this_o article_n be_v once_o take_v away_o there_o remain_v nothing_o but_o mere_a error_n hipochrisie_n impiety_n idolatry_n although_o in_o show_n there_o appear_v excellent_a truth_n 176._o caluin_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la sadoletum_n p._n 176._o worship_n of_o god_n holiness_n etc._n etc._n thus_o luther_n caluin_n also_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n be_v take_v away_o both_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n be_v extinguish_v and_o religion_n abolish_v and_o the_o church_n destroy_v and_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n altogether_o overthrow_v our_o countryman_n m._n perkins_n in_o like_a sort_n affirm_v 66_o per._n in_o his_o reform_a catholic_a touch_v justification_n of_o a_o sinner_n pag._n 65._o 66_o that_o we_o by_o our_o doctrine_n touch_v justification_n do_v ra●●e_v the_o very_a foundation_n and_o that_o the_o disagreement_n between_o we_o and_o the_o protestant_n concern_v this_o matter_n if_o there_o be_v no_o more_o point_n of_o difference_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o keep_v we_o from_o unite_n our_o religion_n this_o be_v his_o opinion_n wherefore_o this_o be_v a_o article_n of_o christian_a belief_n in_o these_o man_n conceit_n so_o principal_a let_v we_o behold_v whether_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o protestant_n do_v not_o plain_o deliver_v our_o doctrine_n concern_v it_o and_o impugn_v they_o the_o chief_a place_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v in_o the_o section_n next_o before_o touch_v this_o matter_n be_v that_o sentence_n of_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n of_o work_n or_o deed_n a_o man_n be_v justify_v and_o not_o of_o faith_n only_o 1592._o jam._n 2._o v._n 24._o bible_n 1592._o and_o how_o do_v all_o the_o lutheran_n yea_o some_o sacramentary_n understand_v these_o word_n true_o they_o open_o and_o bold_o confess_v that_o they_o war_n against_o justification_n by_o only_o faith_n and_o approve_v justification_n by_o work_n and_o they_o assign_v this_o as_o one_o reason_n why_o this_o epistle_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v out_o of_o the_o canon_n luther_n the_o captain_n of_o they_o all_o writing_n upon_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o genesis_n have_v these_o word_n wittenb_n see_v he_o also_o praefat_fw-la in_o nowm_fw-la testam_fw-la edit_fw-la 1._o genensis_n &_o in_o captivitat_fw-la babilo_n ca._n de_fw-fr extrema_fw-la vnct._n &_o in_o 1._o pet._n c._n 1._o fol_z 439._o 440._o edit_n wittenb_n abraham_n be_v just_a by_o faith_n before_o he_o be_v know_v such_o a_o one_o by_o god_n therefore_o james_n do_v naughty_o conclude_v that_o now_o at_o the_o length_n he_o be_v justify_v after_o this_o obedience_n for_o by_o work_n as_o by_o fruit_n faith_n and_o justice_n be_v know_v but_o it_o follow_v not_o ut_fw-la jacobus_n delirat_fw-la as_o james_n dote_o affirm_v therefore_o the_o fruit_n do_v iustifiy_a thus_o there_o and_o in_o another_o place_n 2._o place_n luth._o in_o colloquijs_fw-la convivalibus_fw-la latin_n to_o 2._o de_fw-la libris_fw-la novi_fw-la testam_fw-la part._n 2_o chap._n 6._o sect_n 2._o many_o say_v he_o have_v take_v great_a pain_n in_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n to_o make_v it_o accord_v with_o paul_n as_o philppe_n endeavour_v in_o his_o apology_n but_o not_o with_o good_a success_n for_o they_o be_v contrary_a faith_n do_v justify_v faith_n do_v not_o justify_v loe_o luther_n express_o tell_v we_o that_o s._n james_n avouch_v faith_n not_o to_o justify_v but_o whereas_o he_o make_v this_o apostle_n contrary_a to_o s._n paul_n he_o do_v wrong_v they_o both_o for_o neither_o do_v the_o one_o say_v that_o faith_n do_v not_o justify_v nor_o the_o other_o that_o faith_n alone_o do_v justify_v as_o he_o suppose_v but_o out_o of_o their_o discourse_n it_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o both_o faith_n and_o work_v concur_v to_o justification_n which_o be_v our_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n unto_o which_o luther_n allude_v i_o have_v say_v something_o before_o &_o therefore_o no_o more_o of_o it_o at_o this_o present_n shall_v be_v necessary_a the_o opinion_n of_o roman_n of_o pomeran_n in_o c._n 8._o add_v roman_n pomerane_n a_o lutheran_n of_o great_a estimation_n be_v conformable_a to_o that_o of_o luther_n for_o thus_o he_o pronounce_v his_o censure_n faith_n be_v repute_v to_o abraham_n for_o justice_n by_o this_o place_n thou_o may_v note_v the_o error_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n wherein_o thou_o see_v a_o wicked_a argument_n beside_o that_o he_o conclude_v ridiculous_o he_o cit_v scripture_n against_o scripture_n which_o thing_n the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v abide_v wherefore_o that_o epistle_n may_v not_o be_v number_v among_o other_o book_n which_o set_v forth_o the_o justice_n of_o only_a faith_n thus_o pomerane_n i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o free_v s._n james_n from_o his_o wicked_a accusation_n which_o be_v very_o well_o perform_v by_o diverse_a catholic_a author_n 71._o hil_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o article_n christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n fol._n 23._o centur._n 1._o lib._n 2._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 54._o centur._n 2._o ca._n 4._o col_fw-fr 71._o but_o unto_o this_o lutheran_n i_o will_v join_v the_o magdeburgian_o his_o brethren_n who_o write_n a_o english_a protestant_n judge_v to_o be_v worthy_a of_o eternal_a memory_n who_o say_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n much_o swerve_v from_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n whereas_o it_o ascribe_v justification_n not_o only_o to_o faith_n but_o to_o work_n and_o call_v the_o law_n a_o law_n of_o liberty_n again_o against_o paul_n against_o all_o scripture_n the_o epistle_n of_o james_n attribute_v justice_n to_o work_n and_o pervert_v as_o it_o be_v of_o set_a purpose_n that_o which_o paul_n dispute_v rom._n 4._o out_o of_o genesis_n 15._o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o only_a faith_n without_o work_n and_o affirm_v that_o abraham_n obtain_v justice_n by_o work_n hitherto_o be_v their_o word_n with_o these_o consent_v vitus_n theodorus_n a_o other_o of_o that_o company_n and_o a_o preacher_n of_o norinberge_n who_o yield_v this_o reason_n wherefore_o he_o exclude_v this_o epistle_n from_o the_o canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o epistle_n of_o james_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n of_o john_n say_v he_o we_o have_v of_o set_a purpose_n leave_v out_o because_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n be_v not_o only_o in_o certain_a
of_o freewill_a and_o merit_n of_o work_n the_o like_a have_v 473._o have_v whitgift_n in_o his_o defence_n p._n 472._o &_o 473._o whitgift_n 151._o whitgift_n adam_n scultet_fw-la in_o medulla_n theolog._n p._n 48._o 122._o 151._o adamus_n scultetus_n and_o other_o nay_o field_n although_o he_o also_o term_v s._n augustine_n the_o 170._o the_o field_n book_n 3._o chap._n 42._o pag._n 170._o great_a of_o all_o the_o father_n and_o worthy_a divine_a the_o church_n of_o god_n ever_o have_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n yet_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o 93._o that_o ibid._n chap._n 15._o pag._n 93._o his_o manner_n of_o deliver_v this_o article_n of_o justification_n be_v not_o full_a perfect_a and_o exact_a as_o they_o be_v force_v to_o require_v in_o these_o time_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o romanist_n for_o that_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o grace_n he_o seem_v for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o understand_v nothing_o else_o thereby_o but_o that_o sanctification_n whereby_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n change_v we_o to_o become_v new_a creature_n seldom_o mention_v the_o imputation_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n hitherto_o field_n and_o thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n not_o only_o according_a to_o the_o plain_a and_o open_a confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n but_o also_o according_a to_o the_o tradition_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n our_o say_a adversary_n likewise_o be_v witness_n do_v teach_v not_o with_o they_o that_o faith_n only_o do_v justify_v we_o by_o the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n justice_n but_o with_o we_o that_o work_v also_o concur_v to_o our_o justification_n i_o can_v join_v unto_o this_o another_o argument_n sufficient_a in_o any_o wise_a man_n judgement_n to_o condemn_v these_o sectary_n doctrine_n of_o falsehood_n and_o consequent_o to_o prove_v it_o not_o to_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o wit_n the_o dissension_n which_o be_v among_o they_o in_o explicate_v this_o article_n but_o brevity_n cause_v i_o to_o omit_v it_o only_o i_o wish_v my_o reader_n to_o peruse_v that_o which_o 177._o which_o field_n of_o the_o church_n book_n 3._o chap._n 44._o pag._n 177._o field_n have_v in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v this_o matter_n and_o to_o confer_v it_o with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n institution_n luther_n caluin_n in_o his_o institution_n caluin_n 315._o caluin_n perkins_n in_o his_o reform_a catholic_a pag._n 48._o 315._o perkins_n 887._o perkins_n willet_n in_o his_o synop_n controver_n 19_o part_n 2._o pag._n 827._o part_n 4._o pag._n 877._o 885._o 887._o willet_n and_o other_o for_o there_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o say_a field_n make_v that_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o obtain_v and_o work_v our_o justification_n a_o act_n by_o way_n of_o petition_n humble_o entreat_v for_o acceptation_n and_o favour_n not_o a_o act_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o comfortable_a assurance_n consist_v in_o a_o full_a and_o assure_a persuasion_n that_o through_o christ_n merit_n we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n as_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o rest_n section_n the_o third_z the_o like_a discourse_n be_v make_v concern_v a_o place_n of_o scripture_n allege_v for_o the_o real_a presence_n a_o other_o principal_a article_n controverse_v between_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n be_v that_o touch_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o the_o affirmative_a part_n which_o we_o catholic_n defend_v especial_o against_o the_o sacramentary_n i_o have_v allege_v in_o the_o first_o section_n of_o this_o chapter_n among_o other_o those_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n this_o be_v my_o body_n i_o will_v therefore_o proceed_v and_o discourse_v of_o this_o sentence_n as_o i_o have_v already_o do_v of_o that_o of_o s._n james_n touch_v justification_n by_o work_n melancthon_n for_o his_o learning_n and_o piety_n be_v much_o commend_v both_o by_o 203._o by_o see_v bullenger_n in_o firmamento_fw-la firmo_fw-la cap._n 4._o fol._n 27._o colloquium_fw-la altemberg_n a_o 1568_o fol._n 203._o lutheran_n &_o sacramentary_n luther_n himself_o judge_v his_o book_n of_o common_a place_n eccles_n place_n luth._o tom_n 2._o de_fw-la seruo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la fol._n 424._o in_o colloq_fw-la convivalibus_fw-la ca._n de_fw-fr patribus_fw-la eccles_n worthy_a to_o be_v place_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o 1._o and_o luther_n in_o praefat_fw-la to_o 1._o affirm_v that_o god_n raise_v he_o that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o companion_n in_o his_o labour_n combat_n and_o danger_n in_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n caluin_n term_v he_o 23._o he_o caluin_n admonit_a 3._o ad_fw-la westphalun_n &_o admonit_a ult._n fol._n 23._o the_o great_a ornament_n of_o the_o german_a church_n and_o with_o great_a vehemency_n affirm_v that_o philip_n melancthon_n in_o the_o controversy_n touch_v the_o supper_n can_v be_v no_o more_o pluck_v or_o divide_v from_o he_o then_o from_o his_o own_o proper_a bowel_n peter_n martyr_n call_v he_o 768._o he_o martyr_v in_o dialogo_fw-la de_fw-la corpore_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o loco_fw-la fol._n 107._o contra_fw-la gardinerum_fw-la de_fw-la eucharistia_n pag._n 768._o a_o man_n incomparable_a and_o most_o instruct_v in_o all_o kind_n of_o virtue_n and_o learning_n he_o make_v he_o equal_a in_o learning_n and_o piety_n with_o s._n augustine_n s._n hierome_n s._n leo_n and_o the_o ancient_a father_n beza_n final_o say_v he_o be_v instaurator_n 80._o beza_n in_o iconib_n &_o in_o creophag_n pa._n 80._o the_o repairer_n again_o of_o euangelical_n doctrine_n he_o term_v he_o likewise_o the_o singular_a ornament_n of_o our_o age_n and_o together_o with_o 47._o with_o lavather_n in_o histor_n sacrament_n fol._n 47._o lavatherus_n liken_v he_o to_o the_o phoenix_n what_o then_o write_v this_o great_a scholar_n of_o so_o rare_a virtue_n touch_v this_o matter_n thus_o he_o discourse_v there_o be_v no_o care_n that_o have_v more_o trouble_v my_o mind_n than_o this_o of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o not_o only_a myself_o have_v weigh_v what_o may_v be_v say_v on_o either_o side_n but_o i_o have_v also_o seek_v out_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o old_a writer_n touch_v the_o same_o 132._o melancth_v li._n 3._o ep_v zwinglij_fw-la &_o oecolampadij_fw-la fol._n 132._o and_o when_o i_o have_v lay_v all_o together_o i_o find_v no_o good_a reason_n that_o may_v satisfy_v a_o conscience_n depart_v from_o the_o propriety_n of_o christ_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n you_o gather_v many_o absurdity_n he_o debate_v the_o matter_n with_o oecolampadius_n a_o sacramentary_a which_o follow_v this_o opinion_n but_o absurdity_n will_v not_o trouble_v he_o who_o remember_v that_o we_o must_v judge_v of_o divine_a matter_n according_a to_o god_n word_n not_o according_a to_o geomatry_n and_o soon_o after_o i_o find_v no_o reason_n 140._o ibid._n fol._n 140._o how_o i_o may_v depart_v from_o this_o opinion_n touch_v the_o real_a presence_n well_o it_o may_v be_v a_o other_o opinion_n more_o agreeable_a to_o man_n reason_n may_v please_v a_o idle_a mind_n especial_o if_o the_o say_a opinion_n be_v furnish_v and_o commend_v with_o argument_n well_o handle_v but_o what_o shall_v be_v come_v of_o we_o in_o tentation_n when_o our_o conscience_n shall_v be_v call_v to_o a_o account_n what_o cause_n we_o have_v to_o dissent_v from_o the_o receive_a opinion_n in_o the_o church_n then_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n will_v be_v thunderbolt_n hitherto_o melancthon_n luther_n as_o all_o the_o world_n know_v out_o of_o the_o same_o word_n gather_v and_o defend_v the_o real_a presence_n in_o so_o much_o as_o he_o condemn_v the_o sacramentary_n as_o heretic_n for_o avouch_v the_o contrary_n but_o let_v we_o rehearse_v some_o of_o his_o word_n 390._o luther_n to_o 7._o in_o defence_n verborum_fw-la coenae_fw-la fol._n 388._o ibid._n fol._n 390._o whereas_o god_n power_n say_v he_o surpass_v all_o cogitation_n and_o work_v that_o which_o be_v to_o our_o reason_n incomprehensible_a and_o which_o only_a faith_n believe_v and_o the_o same_o god_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o how_o can_v i_o persuade_v my_o conscience_n that_o god_n have_v neither_o mean_n nor_o ability_n to_o do_v as_o his_o word_n sound_v again_o these_o good_a sacramentary_n by_o their_o loathe_n and_o abhor_v such_o thing_n make_v way_n to_o the_o denial_n of_o christ_n and_o god_n himself_o and_o of_o all_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o true_o for_o a_o great_a part_n they_o have_v already_o begin_v to_o believe_v nothing_o for_o they_o bring_v themselves_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o reason_n which_o be_v the_o right_a way_n to_o damnation_n and_o themselves_o know_v that_o these_o ethnical_a cavil_n either_o be_v nothing_o worth_a against_o this_o article_n or_o if_o they_o conclude_v any_o thing_n against_o this_o they_o do_v the_o like_a
may_v likewise_o believe_v as_o we_o do_v and_o be_v bar_v from_o neither_o and_o consequent_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o our_o faith_n be_v opposite_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o may_v urge_v this_o a_o little_a further_o for_o see_v that_o the_o sacramentary_n belief_n be_v so_o hardly_o censure_v both_o by_o we_o and_o the_o lutheran_n and_o the_o lutheran_n opinion_n both_o by_o we_o and_o the_o sacramentary_n see_v moreover_o we_o by_o the_o lutheran_n be_v esteem_v better_a than_o that_o of_o the_o sacramentary_n as_o all_o the_o world_n know_v and_o it_o appear_v true_a by_o this_o that_o the_o lutheran_n condemn_v it_o not_o as_o heretical_a yea_o saxonica_n yea_o luth._o de_fw-la captivit_fw-la babylon_n iten_fw-ge serm_n de_fw-fr eucharist_n &_o serm_n de_fw-fr venerabili_fw-la sacramento_n etc._n etc._n tom_n 7._o germ._n fol._n 20._o &_o in_o visitat_fw-la saxonica_n luther_n allow_v of_o it_o as_o tolerable_a and_o by_o the_o sacramentary_n prefer_v before_o that_o of_o the_o lutheran_n a_o man_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o wisdom_n be_v rather_o to_o think_v we_o comformable_a to_o truth_n and_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n then_o that_o either_o of_o the_o lutheran_n or_o sacramentary_n but_o it_o may_v be_v urge_v against_o we_o that_o diverse_a 11._o diverse_a see_v whitaker_n reprehension_n against_o martin_n p._n 11._o learned_a sacramentary_n censure_v our_o doctrine_n to_o be_v of_o thing_n incredible_a and_o impossible_a i_o answer_v although_o some_o of_o this_o sect_n be_v so_o blaspheamous_a against_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o god_n as_o so_o to_o affirm_v it_o yet_o other_o protest_v that_o they_o never_o doubt_v of_o god_n power_n herein_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o effect_v it_o but_o they_o say_v he_o never_o do_v it_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o 9_o in_o jewel_n in_o his_o reply_n against_o harding_n art_n 10._o §._o 9_o m._n jewel_n and_o other_o wherefore_o according_a to_o these_o man_n our_o faith_n be_v of_o thing_n by_o we_o in_o this_o life_n incomprehensible_a and_o above_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o reason_n not_o of_o thing_n impossible_a neither_o be_v this_o peculiar_a and_o proper_a only_o to_o this_o mystery_n but_o also_o common_a to_o other_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o to_o our_o belief_n touch_v the_o most_o bless_a trinity_n the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n etc._n etc._n nay_o if_o caluin_n and_o some_o of_o his_o disciple_n say_v true_a this_o be_v verify_v even_o in_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n for_o caluin_n himself_o discourse_v thus_o although_o it_o seem_v incredible_a 10._o caluin_n institut_fw-la book_n 4._o cha_n 17_o §._o 10._o that_o in_o so_o great_a distance_n of_o place_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n reach_v to_o we_o that_o it_o may_v be_v meat_n to_o we_o for_o they_o hold_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o be_v always_o as_o far_o from_o we_o as_o be_v the_o high_a heaven_n yet_o let_v we_o remember_v how_o much_o the_o secret_a power_n of_o the_o spirit_n surmount_v above_o all_o our_o sense_n and_o how_o foolish_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o go_v about_o to_o measure_v his_o unmeasurablenesse_n by_o our_o measure_n that_o therefore_o which_o our_o mind_n comprehend_v not_o let_v our_o faith_n conceive_v etc._n etc._n again_o 24._o ibid._n §._o 24._o the_o doctrine_n itself_o which_o i_o have_v declare_v do_v clear_o enough_o show_v that_o i_o do_v not_o measure_v this_o mystery_n by_o the_o proportion_n of_o man_n reason_n nor_o do_v make_v it_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n he_o add_v that_o he_o be_v more_o than_o senseless_a that_o perceave_v not_o many_o miracle_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o this_o mystery_n as_o he_o deliver_v it_o and_o that_o nothing_o be_v more_o beside_o nature_n or_o more_o incredible_a final_o 32._o ibid._n §._o 32._o now_o if_o any_o man_n say_v he_o ask_v i_o of_o the_o manner_n how_o christ_n be_v join_v to_o we_o in_o the_o supper_n i_o will_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v a_o high_a secret_n then_o that_o it_o can_v either_o be_v comprehend_v with_o my_o wit_n or_o utter_v with_o my_o word_n and_o to_o speak_v it_o more_o plain_o i_o rather_o feel_v it_o then_o i_o can_v understand_v it_o therefore_o i_o do_v herein_o without_o controversy_n embrace_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n in_o which_o i_o may_v safe_o rest_v hitherto_o be_v caluin_n word_n the_o like_a have_v the_o french_a confession_n 426._o french_a confession_n art_n 36._o in_o harmony_n of_o confess_v sect_n 14._o pag._n 426._o in_o which_o his_o disciple_n affirm_v that_o this_o mystery_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n in_o the_o supper_n be_v so_o high_a a_o thing_n that_o it_o surmount_v all_o our_o sense_n yea_o and_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o nature_n that_o it_o be_v divine_a and_o heavenly_a can_v be_v perceave_v nor_o apprehend_v but_o by_o faith_n now_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o who_o can_v make_v any_o great_a difference_n between_o caluins_n doctrine_n and_o we_o in_o this_o that_o his_o be_v of_o thing_n credible_a and_o possible_a we_o of_o thing_n incredible_a and_o impossible_a be_v not_o both_o according_a to_o his_o say_n of_o thing_n incomprehensible_a very_o whosoever_o consider_v well_o his_o word_n and_o observe_v his_o rule_n will_v not_o be_v very_o much_o move_v with_o any_o of_o the_o sacramentary_n argument_n convince_a as_o they_o imagine_v the_o real_a presence_n by_o we_o teach_v to_o be_v impossible_a thus_o than_o we_o see_v that_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n this_o be_v my_o body_n according_a to_o their_o literal_a and_o plain_a sense_n be_v a_o evident_a proof_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n against_o which_o their_o sense_n no_o humane_a or_o philosophical_a reason_n as_o they_o likewise_o avouch_v be_v to_o be_v admit_v let_v we_o now_o see_v how_o our_o say_a adversary_n relate_v all_o our_o predecessor_n especial_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o first_o age_n after_o christ_n to_o have_v expound_v the_o say_a word_n and_o in_o this_o point_n i_o need_v not_o be_v long_o or_o spend_v much_o labour_n because_o the_o lutheran_n have_v not_o be_v altogether_o negligent_a in_o gather_v such_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n against_o their_o enemy_n the_o sacramentary_n as_o make_v for_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o overthrow_v the_o sacramentary_a doctrine_n this_o appear_v in_o diverse_a of_o their_o other_o their_o see_v the_o magdeburgian_o in_o their_o century_n and_o other_o book_n publish_v to_o the_o view_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o which_o they_o declare_v even_o to_o the_o eye_n that_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n hold_v and_o teach_v the_o true_a real_a and_o corporal_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o eucharist_n nay_o some_o of_o they_o grant_v certain_a of_o the_o father_n to_o have_v believe_v transubstantiation_n so_o the_o century_n writer_n affirm_v 517._o affirm_v centur._n 5._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 517._o that_o s._n chrysostome_n seem_v to_o confirm_v it_o and_o that_o 480._o that_o centur._n 4._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 294._o see_v also_o ca._n 6._o col_fw-fr 480._o s._n athanasius_n s._n ambrose_n and_o s._n gregory_n make_v for_o it_o luther_n himself_o tell_v we_o that_o 391._o that_o luth._o tom_n 7._o in_o defence_n verborum_fw-la coenae_fw-la fol._n 391._o this_o be_v worthy_a of_o admiration_n that_o none_o of_o the_o father_n of_o who_o there_o be_v a_o infinite_a number_n do_v ever_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o as_o do_v the_o sacramentary_n but_o clean_o contrary_a and_o what_o say_v the_o sacramentary_n caluin_n sacramentary_n martyr_v in_o defence_n ad_fw-la object_n gardiner_n part_n 4._o p._n 724._o see_v also_o his_o epist_n annex_v to_o his_o common_a place_n pag._n 106._o to_o beza_n and_o p._n 98_o to_o caluin_n peter_n martyr_v plain_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o s._n cyrils_n doctrine_n touch_v this_o matter_n beza_n aver_v that_o 74._o that_o beza_n epist_n theolog._n 8._o pag._n 73._o 74._o most_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n think_v it_o meet_v to_o hide_v or_o keep_v secret_a the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o the_o christian_n he_o mean_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n no_o otherwise_o then_o the_o mystery_n of_o ceres_n in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o admit_v not_o the_o catechumenes_n that_o be_v such_o as_o believe_v yet_o be_v not_o baptize_v to_o behold_v they_o and_o why_o so_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o real_o and_o corporal_o present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n field_n also_o confess_v that_o 149._o that_o field_n book_n 3._o chap._n 34._o pag._n 149._o in_o the_o primative_a church_n the_o manner_n of_o many_o be_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o it_o present_o but_o to_o carry_v it_o home_o with_o
wherefore_o in_o like_a manner_n use_v they_o not_o to_o wash_v one_o another_o foot_n 13._o john_n 13._o have_v we_o not_o for_o this_o a_o express_a example_n and_o commandment_n of_o our_o saviour_n wherefore_o final_o anoint_v they_o not_o their_o sick_a with_o oil_n be_v not_o this_o direct_o command_v by_o s._n james_n 14._o jam._n 5._o v_o 14._o very_o the_o text_n according_a to_o their_o own_o translation_n be_v evident_a in_o these_o and_o diverse_a other_o point_n they_o follow_v not_o their_o own_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o reject_v both_o it_o and_o all_o other_o ground_n do_v that_o which_o please_v best_a their_o own_o fancy_n and_o this_o neglect_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n among_o they_o be_v so_o apparent_a that_o they_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n enforce_v to_o confess_v it_o themselves_o apostle_n martyr_v in_o 1._o cor._n 15._o v._n 5._o see_v also_o field_n of_o the_o church_n book_n 4._o c._n 20_o §._o that_o the_o apostle_n among_o the_o rest_n peter_n martyr_n avouch_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n concern_v the_o election_n of_o minister_n prescribe_v by_o s._n paul_n 1._o tim._n 3._o be_v not_o always_o to_o be_v observe_v with_o who_o accord_v condensi_fw-la accord_v beza_n in_o praefat_fw-la novi_fw-la test_n dicati_fw-la principi_fw-la condensi_fw-la beza_n who_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o rite_n whatsoever_o use_v by_o the_o apostolic_a church_n either_o as_o profitable_a or_o as_o necessary_a for_o that_o time_n be_v not_o at_o all_o time_n to_o be_v receive_v yea_o baptis_n yea_o caluin_n in_o c._n 5._o vers_fw-la 14._o brentius_n in_o apolog_n confess_v wittenb_n cap._n de_fw-fr baptis_n caluin_n and_o brentius_n go_v further_o and_o affirm_v that_o christian_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o apostle_n or_o to_o obey_v their_o doctrine_n except_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o they_o do_v and_o command_v with_o a_o intention_n to_o be_v follow_v and_o obey_v this_o be_v their_o doctrine_n and_o who_o be_v to_o be_v judge_n what_o canon_n rite_n example_n and_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v and_o bind_v man_n to_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o but_o every_o private_a man_n judgement_n and_o fancy_n beside_o this_o they_o observe_v diverse_a rite_n not_o prescribe_v in_o the_o scripture_n if_o we_o follow_v the_o bare_a letter_n for_o where_o find_v they_o that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n sure_o neither_o baptism_n nor_o the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v call_v sacrament_n only_a matrimony_n which_o common_o they_o esteem_v not_o to_o be_v of_o such_o dignity_n be_v honour_v by_o s._n paul_n with_o this_o title_n moreover_o 32._o ephes_n 5_o 32._o where_o be_v the_o form_n and_o ceremony_n which_o they_o observe_v in_o public_a baptism_n communion_n marriage_n and_o common_a prayer_n ordain_v and_o set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n what_o warrant_v have_v they_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o baptise_v of_o infant_n before_o they_o actual_o believe_v do_v not_o our_o saviour_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v 16._o mar._n 16_o 16._o and_o how_o do_v infant_n according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n for_o they_o usual_o deny_v all_o habitual_a faith_n believe_n very_o that_o which_o be_v affirm_v by_o 1536._o by_o luther_n lib._n cont_n cochlaeum_n lutherani_n in_o synod_n wittenb_n anno_o 1536._o luther_n and_o some_o lutheran_n to_o wit_n that_o infant_n new_o bear_v while_o they_o be_v baptize_v have_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n actual_o hear_v and_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n seem_v altogether_o incredible_a but_o anabaptistas_n but_o luther_n ser_n contra_fw-la anabaptistas_n luther_n elsewhere_o plain_o confess_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n yet_o say_v he_o parochos_fw-la he_o luther_n epist_n ad_fw-la dvos_fw-la parochos_fw-la it_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v because_o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n the_o like_a question_n i_o can_v demand_v concern_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o diverse_a other_o observation_n wherefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o they_o both_o neglect_v the_o observation_n of_o diverse_a thing_n prescribe_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o also_o observe_v sundry_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n for_o which_o in_o they_o they_o find_v no_o warrant_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contain_v as_o they_o say_v in_o their_o own_o bibles_n of_o which_o i_o final_o infer_v that_o they_o build_v not_o at_o all_o upon_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o their_o own_o translate_a bible_n favour_n more_o their_o doctrine_n then_o either_o the_o hebrew_n or_o greek_a text_n as_o every_o man_n may_v gather_v of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v in_o the_o chapter_n next_o before_o wherefore_o see_v that_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n be_v not_o all_o approve_a in_o their_o say_a bibles_n every_o man_n may_v well_o censure_v it_o not_o to_o be_v approve_v at_o all_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o this_o may_v be_v confirm_v because_o they_o neither_o build_v upon_o the_o hebrew_n greek_n or_o latin_a text_n but_o in_o some_o place_n reject_v they_o all_o as_o i_o have_v partly_o above_o declare_v and_o will_v declare_v also_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n chapter_n 8._o in_o receive_v translate_n and_o expound_v the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o only_o build_v upon_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o judgement_n and_o that_o they_o have_v no_o other_o ground_n section_n the_o first_o in_o which_o this_o be_v prove_v by_o their_o doctrine_n and_o dissension_n concern_v the_o book_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o their_o alter_n of_o the_o text_n of_o the_o same_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o our_o adversary_n build_v not_o upon_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o they_o seem_v to_o make_v the_o only_a ground_n and_o rule_v of_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n it_o remain_v that_o i_o now_o declare_v and_o make_v manifest_a what_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o rule_v which_o in_o all_o such_o matter_n they_o follow_v and_o this_o in_o the_o title_n of_o this_o chapter_n i_o have_v affirm_v to_o be_v their_o own_o fancy_n and_o imagination_n by_o which_o they_o either_o by_o private_a and_o erroneous_a deduction_n out_o of_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o by_o false_o understand_v of_o the_o same_o frame_n to_o themselves_o a_o particular_a and_o false_a rule_n of_o belief_n or_o else_o first_o frame_n to_o themselves_o out_o of_o their_o carnal_a faithless_a and_o feeble_a understanding_n such_o a_o rule_n and_o afterwards_o by_o rejection_n false_a translation_n corruption_n or_o erroneous_a exposition_n ply_v and_o wrest_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o their_o say_a rule_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o i_o can_v use_v diverse_a argument_n notwithstanding_o these_o few_o follow_v for_o brevity_n sake_n shall_v suffice_v but_o before_o i_o bring_v forth_o any_o one_o reason_n i_o must_v here_o divide_v all_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n into_o three_o sort_n or_o company_n for_o some_o of_o they_o read_v and_o understand_v the_o scripture_n in_o those_o tongue_n in_o which_o they_o be_v first_o pen_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n other_o there_o be_v that_o read_v and_o understand_v they_o only_o translate_v into_o other_o tongue_n and_o other_o that_o can_v read_v at_o al._n the_o first_o for_o distinction_n sake_n i_o will_v here_o call_v the_o learned_a the_o second_o the_o unlearned_a and_o the_o three_o the_o ignorant_a sectary_n in_o the_o four_o first_o section_n i_o will_v principal_o discourse_v of_o the_o learned_a and_o first_o i_o demand_v of_o they_o how_o they_o prove_v the_o bible_n to_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n very_o this_o as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o canonical_a scripture_n neither_o have_v they_o for_o it_o as_o i_o have_v there_o also_o declare_v any_o other_o infallible_a proof_n wherefore_o i_o may_v true_o avouch_v that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o receive_v and_o reject_v scripture_n according_a as_o he_o be_v lead_v by_o his_o own_o fancy_n but_o to_o make_v this_o more_o evident_a let_v we_o behold_v their_o dissension_n concern_v the_o canonical_a book_n and_o consider_v that_o such_o as_o some_o of_o they_o receive_v into_o the_o canon_n other_o reject_v and_o contrariwise_o such_o as_o some_o reject_v other_o receive_v luther_n tell_v we_o plain_o that_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v all_o thing_n be_v so_o do_v as_o be_v relate_v in_o the_o book_n of_o novitestam_fw-la of_o luther_n in_o sermonib_n convivalibus_fw-la titul_n de_fw-fr patriarchis_fw-la &_o prophetis_fw-la &_o titul_a de_fw-fr libris_fw-la veteris_fw-la &_o novitestam_fw-la job_n and_o further_o disgrace_v the_o say_a book_n by_o
thus_o the_o lutheran_n preacher_n rage_n hitherto_o in_o their_o pulpit_n against_o the_o caluinist_n as_o much_o as_o ever_o and_o their_o prince_n and_o people_n have_v they_o in_o as_o great_a detestation_n not_o forbear_v to_o profess_v open_o that_o they_o will_v return_v to_o the_o papacy_n rather_o than_o ever_o admit_v that_o sacramentary_a and_o predestinary_a pestilence_n for_o these_o two_o point_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o quarrel_n and_o the_o late_a more_o scandalous_a at_o this_o day_n than_o the_o former_a thus_o he_o write_v as_o it_o be_v probable_a of_o thing_n which_o he_o see_v and_o hear_v with_o his_o own_o eye_n and_o ear_n and_o what_o be_v the_o offspring_n and_o fountain_n of_o this_o their_o division_n and_o dissension_n but_o the_o want_n of_o a_o certain_a infallible_a rule_n to_o direct_v they_o for_o because_o they_o all_o seem_v with_o one_o consent_n to_o accept_v of_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o only_a ground_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o the_o say_a word_n admit_v sundry_a exposition_n every_o man_n among_o they_o who_o wit_n by_o any_o mean_n can_v reach_v to_o the_o invention_n either_o of_o a_o new_a translation_n or_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o of_o some_o new_a opinion_n which_o by_o wrest_v and_o wring_v he_o can_v in_o outward_a show_n confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o found_v a_o new_a sect_n hence_o be_v these_o word_n of_o luther_n 101._o luther_n epist_n ad_fw-la antuerp_n tom_fw-mi 2._o germ._n ●en_o fol._n 101._o there_o be_v almost_o so_o many_o sect_n and_o religion_n among_o we_o as_o there_o be_v man_n there_o be_v no_o ass_n in_o this_o time_n so_o sottish_a and_o blockish_a but_o will_v have_v the_o dream_n of_o his_o own_o head_n and_o his_o opinion_n accept_v for_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o himself_o esteem_v as_o a_o prophet_n and_o again_o in_o a_o other_o place_n thus_o he_o complain_v the_o peace_n and_o concord_n of_o the_o church_n be_v once_o break_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o infallible_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v once_o forsake_v there_o be_v no_o mean_a or_o end_n of_o dissension_n 416_o luther_n in_o ca._n 5._o ad_fw-la galat._n tom_n 5._o wittenb_n fol._n 416_o in_o our_o time_n first_o the_o sacramentary_n forsake_v we_o afterwards_o the_o anabaptist_n of_o these_o neither_o agree_v among_o themselves_o so_o always_o one_o sect_n bring_v forth_o another_o and_o once_o condemn_v another_o hitherto_o luther_n the_o ringleader_n of_o all_o the_o dance_n himself_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o their_o division_n and_o dissension_n in_o this_o place_n i_o know_v that_o some_o of_o our_o adversary_n be_v so_o bold_a i_o may_v say_v so_o impudent_a as_o to_o deny_v there_o be_v any_o great_a or_o material_a dissension_n in_o their_o church_n and_o among_o other_o m._n field_n write_v faith_n field_n book_n 3_o ch_z 42._o p._n 170._o see_v also_o ibid._n pag._n 169._o where_o he_o say_v there_o be_v a_o full_a consent_n in_o their_o public_a confession_n of_o faith_n that_o it_o so_o fall_v out_o by_o the_o happy_a providence_n of_o god_n when_o there_o be_v a_o reformation_n make_v by_o his_o brother_n that_o there_o be_v no_o material_a or_o essential_a difference_n among_o they_o but_o such_o as_o upon_o equal_a scan_n will_v be_v find_v rather_o to_o consist_v in_o the_o diverse_a manner_n of_o express_v one_o thing_n and_o to_o be_v but_o verbal_a upon_o the_o mistake_n through_o the_o hasty_a and_o inconsiderate_a humour_n of_o some_o man_n than_o any_o thing_n else_o he_o add_v further_a yea_o i_o dare_v confident_o pronounce_v that_o after_o due_a and_o full_a examination_n of_o each_o other_o meaning_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o difference_n find_v touch_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o ubiquitary_a presence_n or_o the_o like_a between_o the_o church_n reform_v by_o luther_n ministry_n in_o germany_n and_o other_o place_n and_o those_o who_o some_o man_n malice_n call_v sacramentary_n that_o none_o of_o the_o difference_n between_o melancthon_n and_o illiricus_fw-la except_o about_o certain_a ceremony_n be_v real_a that_o osiander_n hold_v no_o private_a opinion_n of_o justification_n howsoever_o his_o strange_a manner_n of_o speak_v give_v occasion_n to_o many_o so_o to_o think_v and_o conceive_v and_o this_o shall_v be_v justify_v against_o the_o proud_a papist_n of_o they_o all_o thus_o field_n but_o how_o untrue_a this_o his_o assertion_n be_v all_o the_o world_n know_v and_o it_o may_v be_v easy_o here_o demonstrate_v do_v not_o the_o matter_n belong_v proper_o to_o a_o other_o place_n i_o have_v partly_o also_o show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o it_o already_o nevertheless_o to_o add_v a_o word_n or_o two_o against_o this_o doctor_n in_o particular_a how_o do_v this_o agree_v with_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o epistle_n dedicatory_a of_o his_o book_n 86._o see_v his_o word_n cite_v at_o large_a in_o the_o preface_n of_o this_o treatise_n see_v also_o in_o his_o three_o book_n ch_n 13._o pag._n 86._o do_v he_o not_o there_o complain_v of_o unhappy_a division_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o of_o infinite_a distraction_n of_o man_n mind_n not_o know_v in_o so_o great_a variety_n of_o opinion_n what_o to_o think_v or_o to_o who_o to_o join_v themselves_o every_o faction_n say_v he_o boast_v of_o the_o pure_a and_o sincere_a profession_n of_o heavenly_a truth_n challenge_v to_o itself_o alone_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o fasten_v upon_o all_o that_o dissent_n or_o be_v otherwise_o mind_v the_o hateful_a note_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n there_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n in_o our_o time_n be_v grow_v in_o number_n so_o many_o and_o in_o nature_n so_o intricate_a that_o few_o have_v time_n and_o leisure_n few_o strength_n of_o understanding_n to_o examine_v they_o and_o therefore_o he_o conclude_v that_o nothing_o remain_v for_o man_n desirous_a of_o satisfaction_n in_o thing_n of_o such_o consequence_n but_o diligent_o to_o search_v out_o the_o church_n that_o so_o they_o may_v embrace_v her_o communion_n follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n thus_o he_o discourse_v in_o his_o epistle_n dedicatory_a and_o how_o can_v these_o thing_n be_v make_v consonant_n and_o agreeable_a to_o his_o other_o word_n even_o now_o allege_v true_o i_o think_v a_o indifferent_a reader_n will_v hardly_o excuse_v he_o from_o contradiction_n beside_o this_o he_o tell_v we_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n the_o ubiquitarie_a presence_n and_o the_o like_a between_o the_o lutheran_n and_o the_o sacramentary_n etc._n caluin_n instit_fw-la book_n 4._o chap._n 17_o §._o 16._o etc._n etc._n but_o caluin_n avouch_v that_o by_o the_o ubiquitarie_a presence_n martion_n a_o ancient_a heretic_n be_v raise_v up_o out_o of_o hell_n the_o caluinist_n also_o in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n although_o a_o book_n publish_v to_o show_v a_o consent_n among_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n exclaim_v in_o like_a manner_n against_o it_o and_o a_o thousand_o other_o book_n write_v on_o both_o side_n convince_v he_o of_o falsehood_n field_n say_v none_o of_o the_o difference_n between_o melancthon_n and_o illiricus_fw-la except_o about_o certain_a ceremony_n be_v real_a but_o whosoever_o read_v the_o act_n of_o synod_n hold_v by_o lutheran_n at_o altenburge_n and_o the_o public_a write_n of_o the_o flaccian_o so_o call_v of_o flaccus_n illiricus_fw-la against_o the_o synergist_n and_o adiaphorist_n two_o other_o sect_n of_o lutheran_n and_o of_o these_o against_o they_o shall_v find_v dissension_n touch_v great_a matter_n field_n avouch_v that_o osiander_n hold_v no_o private_a opinion_n of_o justification_n but_o caluin_n in_o his_o institution_n 6._o caluin_n instit_fw-la book_n 3._o chap._n 11._o §._o 5._o etc._n etc._n heshusius_fw-la l._n count_n osiand_n schlusselbur_n in_o catalogo_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la lib._n 6._o spend_v almost_o one_o whole_a chapter_n in_o the_o confutation_n of_o osianders_n opinion_n concern_v this_o article_n which_o at_o his_o very_a entrance_n to_o this_o point_n he_o call_v be_v wot_v not_o what_o monster_n of_o essential_a righteousness_n heshusius_fw-la a_o lutheran_n in_o like_a sort_n condemn_v his_o brother_n osianders_n doctrine_n touch_v this_o and_o conradus_n schlusselburge_n a_o other_o of_o that_o sect_n place_v he_o and_o his_o follower_n in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o heretic_n such_o be_v field_n rare_a &_o singular_a proceed_n in_o which_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o affirm_v thing_n most_o apparent_o false_a and_o confess_v untrue_a by_o all_o his_o brother_n and_o true_o a_o man_n of_o small_a learning_n read_v his_o book_n of_o the_o church_n may_v first_o find_v that_o he_o have_v a_o good_a opinion_n of_o himself_o of_o his_o own_o wit_n and_o
excuse_v his_o inconstancy_n that_o sometime_o contrary_a to_o his_o own_o conscience_n and_o opinion_n he_o oppugned_a the_o truth_n and_o seduce_v man_n with_o falsehood_n true_o this_o his_o own_o word_n testify_v and_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o what_o doctrine_n do_v he_o here_o recant_v certain_o luther_n not_o we_o for_o he_o first_o fall_v from_o we_o to_o lutheranisme_n and_o defend_v luther_n opinion_n concern_v the_o real_a presence_n but_o within_o few_o year_n profit_v to_o the_o worse_o he_o become_v a_o sacramentary_a and_o affirm_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v a_o bare_a figure_n only_o of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n unto_o these_o three_o i_o may_v very_o well_o join_v john_n caluin_n as_o every_o man_n will_v grant_v that_o shall_v view_v the_o first_o edition_n of_o his_o institution_n set_v forth_o at_o strasburge_n where_o he_o profess_v himself_o first_o a_o lutheran_n and_o confer_v it_o with_o the_o last_o edition_n of_o the_o same_o and_o with_o other_o of_o his_o work_n the_o disciple_n and_o follower_n of_o these_o four_o principal_a captain_n most_o constant_o follow_v the_o inconstancy_n of_o their_o master_n and_o first_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a matter_n and_o almost_o incredible_a how_o wonderful_a inconstant_a the_o lutheran_n professor_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o ausburge_n have_v always_o show_v themselves_o in_o their_o proceed_n for_o the_o declaration_n of_o which_o i_o must_v give_v my_o reader_n to_o understand_v that_o this_o confession_n above_o all_o other_o pen_v in_o those_o day_n by_o our_o adversary_n be_v both_o permit_v by_o the_o imperial_a law_n of_o germany_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o professor_n thereof_o be_v free_v from_o all_o punishment_n by_o the_o law_n due_a unto_o heretic_n and_o also_o by_o diverse_a esteem_v as_o a_o five_o gospel_n hence_o it_o proceed_v that_o all_o sectary_n of_o what_o new_a sect_n soever_o profess_v themselves_o follower_n of_o this_o confession_n and_o because_o the_o word_n themselves_o can_v not_o sound_v well_o on_o every_o side_n they_o add_v also_o their_o commentary_n upon_o the_o same_o and_o like_a as_o the_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n so_o of_o this_o every_o man_n endeavour_v to_o draw_v to_o his_o diverse_a fancy_n unto_o this_o mischief_n a_o other_o soon_o after_o be_v adjoin_v to_o wit_n the_o change_n and_o alteration_n of_o the_o confession_n itself_o for_o melancthon_n the_o first_o penner_n of_o it_o fall_v by_o little_a and_o little_a from_o lutheranisme_n to_o zwinglianisme_n frame_v a_o new_a confession_n according_a to_o his_o new_a faith_n and_o publish_v it_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o ausburge_n neither_o be_v this_o practise_v only_o by_o melancthon_n but_o also_o as_o it_o seem_v by_o other_o hence_o far_o among_o sundry_a other_o contention_n among_o the_o professor_n of_o this_o new_a faith_n there_o arise_v no_o small_a controversy_n even_o among_o the_o lutheran_n themselves_o who_o be_v the_o true_a follower_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o ausburge_n and_o whosoever_o be_v desirous_a to_o see_v a_o part_n of_o this_o conflict_n let_v he_o read_v a_o book_n entitle_v colloquium_fw-la altenbergense_n in_o which_o the_o act_n and_o opinion_n of_o certain_a lutheran_n divine_n which_o meet_v in_o the_o say_a town_n for_o the_o decision_n of_o this_o matter_n and_o other_o be_v set_v down_o and_o among_o other_o thing_n in_o it_o he_o shall_v find_v not_o only_o their_o dissension_n concern_v the_o true_a copy_n or_o authentical_a edition_n of_o this_o confession_n but_o also_o understand_v that_o some_o of_o these_o divine_v accuse_v their_o fellow_n lutheran_n of_o wittenberg_n that_o they_o be_v miserable_o turn_v round_o like_o a_o wheel_n in_o their_o faith_n that_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v violent_o carry_v with_o contrary_a wind_n and_o that_o they_o vary_v without_o end_n and_o measure_v the_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n this_o perhaps_o cause_v george_n that_o most_o noble_a duke_n of_o saxony_n be_v demand_v touch_v the_o new_a sectary_n faith_n what_o it_o be_v to_o make_v answer_n that_o he_o know_v very_o well_o what_o they_o believe_v this_o year_n but_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o know_v what_o they_o will_v believe_v the_o next_o this_o also_o move_v the_o lutheran_n historiographer_n praefat_fw-la centur._n 9_o in_o praefat_fw-la to_o term_v all_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o ausburge_n ecebolio_n and_o to_o liken_v they_o to_o the_o fish_n polipus_n or_o pourcountrel_n which_o change_v often_o his_o colour_n and_o to_o the_o old_a pagan_a god_n vertumnus_n who_o can_v turn_v himself_o into_o all_o shape_n they_o affirm_v final_o that_o they_o now_o approve_v the_o true_a doctrine_n and_o present_o after_o condemn_v the_o same_o now_o call_v that_o heresy_n which_o before_o they_o preach_v as_o a_o unconquered_a truth_n thus_o far_o the_o centuriator_n they_o may_v likewise_o have_v add_v that_o they_o embrace_v sometime_o that_o doctrine_n as_o true_a and_o evangelical_a which_o before_o they_o censure_v to_o be_v heretical_a for_o a_o example_n of_o this_o their_o manner_n of_o proceed_v we_o have_v from_o dresda_n in_o misina_n where_o in_o a_o synod_n hold_v anno_fw-la 1571._o certain_a lutheran_n condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o brentius_n and_o illiricus_fw-la their_o fellow_n concordiae_fw-la in_o lib._n concordiae_fw-la concern_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n which_o opinion_n nevertheless_o after_o some_o few_o year_n to_o wit_n anno_fw-la 1580._o they_o public_o embrace_v as_o true_a and_o these_o contrary_a opinion_n be_v publish_v in_o the_o self_n fame_n city_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o self_n same_o prince_n within_o so_o short_a a_o time_n the_o zwinglian_o have_v show_v themselves_o even_o as_o inconstant_a as_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o county_n palatine_n turn_v from_o catholic_a religion_n to_o zwinglianisme_n from_o zwinglianisme_n to_o lutheranisme_n and_o from_o lutheranisme_n in_o a_o short_a time_n again_o to_o zwinglianisme_n 15._o simlerus_n in_o vita_fw-la bullingeri_n fol._n 15._o add_v also_o that_o the_o earl_n of_o wittenberg_n in_o the_o year_n 1535._o with_o his_o whole_a country_n embrace_v zwinglianisme_n but_o he_o be_v dead_a the_o religion_n be_v soon_o change_v again_o as_o simlerus_n a_o zwinglian_n report_v other_o city_n likewise_o of_o high_a germany_n as_o long_o as_o bucer_n a_o zwinglian_n live_v 15._o fol._n 15._o follow_v his_o doctrine_n but_o soon_o after_o his_o death_n as_o the_o same_o author_n testify_v they_o condemn_v the_o zwinglian_o as_o the_o most_o wicked_a man_n live_v i_o can_v but_o say_v a_o word_n or_o two_o of_o melancthon_n in_o particular_a both_o because_o sometime_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a estimation_n among_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n and_o also_o because_o his_o inconstancy_n be_v most_o notorious_a he_o be_v call_v by_o beza_n iconibus_fw-la beza_n beza_n in_o iconibus_fw-la the_o setter_n up_o of_o euangelical_n doctrine_n and_o the_o singular_a ornament_n of_o our_o age_n by_o 47._o by_o lavather_n in_o histor_n sacram_fw-la fol._n 47._o lavatherus_n and_o 468_o and_o martyr_v contra_fw-la gardiner_n par_fw-fr 4._o p._n 468_o peter_n martyr_v a_o man_n incomparable_a and_o thorough_o instruct_v with_o all_o kind_n of_o virtue_n and_o learning_n by_o certain_a other_o minister_n 8._o minister_n minist_n pinzoniensis_fw-la apud_fw-la stancarum_fw-la m._n 8._o the_o doctor_n of_o doctor_n and_o the_o divine_a of_o divine_n who_o be_v one_o say_v they_o be_v better_a than_o a_o hundred_o augustine_n thus_o these_o sectary_n commend_v he_o but_o how_o inconstant_a a_o man_n he_o be_v in_o his_o belief_n all_o the_o world_n know_v and_o every_o man_n may_v easy_o perceive_v by_o the_o confer_v of_o the_o diverse_a edition_n of_o his_o 424._o his_o see_v colloq_fw-la altemb_n f._n 520._o 503._o 463._o 425._o 424._o apology_n and_o book_n of_o common_a place_n together_o wherefore_o for_o this_o vice_n he_o be_v reprehend_v by_o diverse_a of_o his_o own_o company_n yea_o concern_v his_o apology_n this_o be_v plain_o confess_v by_o melancthon_n himself_o who_o in_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o luther_n write_v thus_o in_o the_o apology_n we_o daily_o alter_v many_o thing_n for_o they_o be_v ever_o now_o and_o then_o to_o be_v change_v and_o to_o be_v accommodate_v or_o conform_v to_o occasion_n thus_o he_o the_o like_a discourse_n i_o can_v make_v of_o the_o inconstancy_n of_o peter_n martyr_n who_o be_v accuse_v of_o this_o fault_n by_o 127._o by_o bullinger_n in_o firmamento_fw-la firmo_fw-la c._n 4._o f._n 127._o bullinger_n but_o i_o shall_v be_v overlong_o our_o english_a sectary_n at_o home_n have_v not_o be_v free_a from_o the_o same_o crime_n for_o how_o often_o do_v they_o change_v during_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o sixth_o the_o first_o statute_n make_v in_o a_o parliament_n hold_v in_o the_o first_o
follow_v the_o truth_n and_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o error_n i_o add_v likewise_o that_o he_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o both_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la and_o all_o the_o principal_a sectary_n have_v err_v in_o some_o one_o point_n or_o other_o for_o i_o think_v that_o there_o be_v almost_o no_o man_n that_o follow_v either_o of_o they_o in_o all_o thing_n how_o then_o can_v any_o man_n be_v assure_v that_o they_o have_v not_o likewise_o err_v in_o other_o article_n in_o which_o he_o follow_v they_o sure_o a_o possibility_n of_o error_n in_o one_o point_n argue_v a_o possibility_n of_o error_n in_o all_o other_o of_o that_o kind_n but_o these_o matter_n have_v be_v touch_v before_o chapter_n 10._o contain_v the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o treatise_n let_v we_o now_o draw_v forth_o of_o the_o long_a discourse_n of_o this_o treatise_n some_o brief_a conclusion_n and_o so_o make_v a_o end_n first_o therefore_o out_o of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v here_o say_v i_o gather_v that_o the_o catholic_n build_v their_o faith_n and_o religion_n upon_o far_o more_o sound_a and_o firm_a ground_n than_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a doctrine_n this_o be_v manifest_a because_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o ground_n among_o all_o those_o which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o treatise_n on_o which_o the_o catholic_n build_v which_o do_v not_o far_o excel_v any_o ground_n whatsoever_o of_o the_o new_a sectary_n yea_o i_o dare_v yet_o go_v a_o little_a far_o and_o affirm_v that_o although_o i_o shall_v set_v aside_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o as_o i_o have_v above_o declare_v all_o our_o particular_a ground_n receive_v their_o strength_n and_o force_n and_o consider_v our_o ground_n only_o as_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o without_o any_o other_o authority_n annex_v and_o also_o grant_v unto_o our_o adversary_n that_o they_o build_v upon_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o i_o say_v i_o dare_v affirm_v that_o we_o build_v upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n far_o more_o sound_o and_o more_o firm_o than_o they_o consider_v a_o little_a that_o the_o catholic_n receive_v the_o bare_a letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n in_o the_o tongue_n in_o which_o these_o sacred_a book_n be_v first_o pen_v as_o well_o as_o the_o sectary_n let_v we_o therefore_o suppose_v that_o in_o this_o they_o be_v equal_a but_o what_o a_o great_a difference_n shall_v we_o find_v between_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o translation_n and_o interpretation_n and_o the_o proof_n of_o we_o catalago_n hieron_n in_o praefat_fw-la in_o euang_n ad_fw-la damasum_fw-la item_n in_o catalago_n the_o catholic_n have_v the_o old_a testament_n translate_v by_o s._n hierome_n their_o translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n although_o it_o be_v use_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n before_o s._n hieromes_n day_n yet_o it_o be_v by_o he_o correct_v and_o amend_v and_o what_o be_v s._n hierome_n he_o be_v first_o a_o marvelous_a holy_a man_n of_o life_n as_o all_o antiquity_n give_v testimony_n he_o flourish_v in_o the_o church_n above_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n since_o and_o therefore_o he_o live_v near_o unto_o the_o apostle_n day_n that_o be_v within_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n wherefore_o the_o say_a apostle_n doctrine_n be_v then_o something_o fresh_a in_o memory_n he_o can_v with_o great_a ease_n attain_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o holy_a scripture_n than_o any_o interpreter_n of_o our_o age_n in_o his_o day_n there_o be_v no_o question_n or_o doubt_v move_v in_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o especial_a point_n now_o in_o controversy_n between_o we_o &_o the_o new_a sectary_n i_o mean_v touch_v the_o real_a presence_n justification_n and_o such_o like_a point_n wherefore_o he_o be_v a_o man_n indifferent_a not_o partial_a of_o either_o side_n but_o he_o follow_v that_o sense_n which_o be_v then_o common_o approve_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o his_o great_a learning_n thus_o write_v s._n augustine_n in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o julian_n the_o pelagian_n 7._o aug._n lib._n 1._o contra_fw-la julianum_fw-la cap._n 7._o neither_o do_v thou_o think_v that_o s._n hierome_n because_o he_o be_v only_o a_o priest_n be_v to_o be_v despise_v who_o be_v skilful_a in_o the_o latin_a greek_a and_o moreover_o in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n pass_v from_o the_o west_n church_n to_o the_o east_n live_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n in_o jewrie_n and_o in_o study_n of_o holy_a scripture_n until_o he_o be_v a_o very_a old_a man_n this_o man_n read_v all_o or_o almost_o all_o that_o before_o he_o have_v write_v of_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n in_o both_o part_n of_o the_o world_n this_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n the_o like_a he_o have_v in_o a_o 43._o a_o idem_fw-la li._n 18._o the_o civet_n c._n 43._o other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n and_o other_o and_o see_v also_o cassianus_n l._n 7._o de_fw-la verbi_fw-la incarn_n count_n nestor_n prosp_n de_fw-fr ingrat_fw-la cassiodor_n divinar_fw-mi lect._n ca._n 21._o and_o other_o other_o approve_a author_n give_v he_o as_o great_a a_o commendation_n add_v unto_o this_o that_o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o hebrew_n text_n he_o 125_o he_o hieron_n epist_n 4._o et_fw-la 125_o take_v instruction_n concern_v that_o tongue_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o jew_n hence_o illiricus_fw-la a_o learned_a lutheran_n have_v find_v fault_n with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o four_o first_o age_n after_o christ_n for_o ignorance_n in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n of_o s._n hierome_n write_v as_o follow_v only_o my_o countryman_n hierome_n be_v marvelous_a cunning_n in_o the_o tongue_n he_o endeavour_v to_o illustrate_v the_o scripture_n both_o by_o his_o translation_n and_o commentary_n but_o he_o indeed_o be_v ignorant_a of_o man_n sickness_n and_o christ_n the_o physician_n and_o want_v the_o key_n which_o open_v the_o scripture_n that_o be_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n be_v also_o destitute_a of_o christ_n who_o open_v the_o door_n do_v little_o good_a hitherto_o be_v his_o word_n of_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a proefat_n manifest_a illiricus_fw-la in_o clavi_fw-la part_n 1._o proefat_n that_o according_a to_o this_o protestant_n judgement_n no_o skill_n in_o the_o tongue_n be_v want_v to_o this_o holy_a doctor_n and_o although_o i_o confess_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n believe_v in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o assistance_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v necessary_a to_o this_o that_o a_o man_n true_o translate_v or_o interpret_v scripture_n yet_o i_o also_o first_o affirm_v that_o any_o man_n of_o sense_n will_v rather_o yield_v these_o prerogative_n to_o s._n hierome_n a_o man_n so_o holy_a and_o ancient_a then_o to_o any_o new_a sectary_n whatsoever_o second_o i_o can_v see_v how_o according_a to_o the_o protestant_a ground_n these_o condition_n or_o quality_n can_v be_v prerequired_n in_o a_o translator_n or_o interpreter_n of_o such_o divine_a book_n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o foundation_n and_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n as_o they_o teach_v and_o out_o of_o it_o only_o true_a belief_n be_v to_o be_v learn_v how_o be_v it_o possible_a but_o a_o man_n first_o beginning_n to_o translate_v read_v or_o interpret_v scripture_n shall_v want_n true_a belief_n how_o can_v scripture_n be_v the_o only_a ground_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o yet_o true_a faith_n be_v prerequire_v to_o the_o true_a translation_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n beside_o this_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o illiricus_fw-la allege_v it_o may_v well_o be_v gather_v that_o no_o skill_n and_o knowledge_n of_o tongue_n suffice_v to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o sufficient_a translator_n or_o expounder_n of_o scripture_n except_o withal_o his_o faith_n be_v sound_a and_o he_o direct_v by_o christ_n who_o open_v the_o door_n of_o which_o it_o will_v follow_v see_v that_o no_o man_n as_o they_o say_v before_o he_o read_v and_o understand_v scripture_n can_v infallible_o know_v that_o he_o himself_o or_o any_o other_o be_v endue_v with_o such_o faith_n or_o have_v such_o assistance_n that_o no_o man_n can_v infallible_o know_v his_o own_o or_o a_o other_o man_n translation_n to_o be_v true_a and_o sincere_a very_o if_o the_o translator_n faith_n must_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o conformity_n which_o it_o have_v to_o holy_a scripture_n as_o it_o be_v by_o they_o affirm_v the_o scripture_n must_v first_o be_v know_v before_o this_o conformity_n can_v be_v discern_v and_o how_o can_v this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o unlearned_a sectary_n see_v that_o he_o can_v otherwise_o know_v the_o scripture_n but_o by_o some_o translator_n or_o interpreter_n of_o which_o may_v be_v infer_v that_o the_o unlearned_a sectary_n can_v never_o assure_v themselves_o
all_o point_n appertain_v to_o faith_n and_o religion_n she_o be_v final_o the_o ship_n and_o skilful_a pilot_n which_o throughout_o all_o the_o storm_n and_o tempest_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n will_v guide_v we_o without_o error_n to_o the_o port_n of_o everlasting_a salvation_n and_o make_v we_o fit_a stone_n to_o be_v place_v everlasting_o in_o the_o triumphant_a church_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n finis_fw-la a_o appendix_n to_o this_o treatise_n contain_v a_o brief_a confutation_n of_o a_o book_n publish_v in_o the_o year_n m._n d.c.vi_n by_o william_n crashaw_n bear_v this_o title_n romish_a forgery_n and_o falfification_n etc._n etc._n if_o all_o be_v true_a which_o be_v object_v by_o new_a sectary_n against_o the_o one_o true_a spouse_n of_o christ_n the_o catholic_a church_n all_o man_n endue_v with_o reason_n may_v according_a to_o reason_n prudent_o marvel_v that_o any_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n do_v follow_v her_o doctrine_n or_o embrace_v her_o communion_n luther_n exclaim_v against_o her_o child_n that_o they_o make_v the_o virgin_n mary_n a_o annunciationis_fw-la a_o luther_n ad_fw-la euangelium_fw-la d●_n festo_fw-la annunciationis_fw-la goddess_n give_v her_o omnipotency_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n caluin_n eccles_n caluin_n caluin_n book_n 3._o instit_fw-la c._n 20_o §._o 22._o l._n de_fw-fr necessit_fw-la reformand_n eccles_n that_o they_o give_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n unto_o saint_n and_o honour_v they_o and_o their_o relic_n in_o place_n of_o christ_n luther_n again_o christo_fw-la again_o luth._o add_v c._n 50._o genes_n in_o colloq_fw-la germ._n c._n de_fw-la christo_fw-la that_o they_o deny_v justification_n and_o salvation_n through_o christ_n passion_n and_o merit_n caluin_n 21._o caluin_n caluin_n book_n 3._o instit_fw-la cap._n 20._o §._o 21._o that_o in_o their_o litany_n hymn_n and_o prose_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o christ_n yea_o that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n christ_n be_v pass_v over_o god_n be_v pray_v to_o by_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n luther_n moreover_o privatae_fw-la moreover_o luther_n ad_fw-la l._n ducis_fw-la georgij_fw-la scripsit_fw-la a_o 1533._o &_o l._n de_fw-fr abrogat_fw-la missae_fw-la privatae_fw-la that_o they_o hold_v a_o man_n may_v keep_v the_o commandment_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n caluin_n that_o they_o 10._o they_o caluin_n book_n 1._o instit_fw-la ch_n 11._o §._o 9_o and_o 10._o give_v idolatrous_a worship_n unto_o image_n luther_n also_o that_o ecclesia_fw-la that_o luther_n l._n de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la the_o pope_n bury_v the_o scripture_n in_o dirt_n and_o dust_n caluin_n 1●_n caluin_n caluin_n book_n 4._o instit_fw-la ch_n 9_o §._o 24._o in_o antid_v council_n triden_n sess_v 7._o canon_n 1●_n that_o they_o make_v the_o oracle_n of_o god_n subject_n unto_o man_n and_o that_o they_o esteem_v more_o in_o baptism_n of_o chrism_n salt_n and_o such_o other_o thing_n then_o of_o the_o wash_n with_o water_n luther_n final_o concilijs_fw-la final_o luther_n lib._n de_fw-la concilijs_fw-la that_o they_o give_v to_o counsel_n authority_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o change_v the_o old_a caluin_n that_o they_o give_v the_o pope_n authority_n to_o institute_v new_a sacrament_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n hold_v there_o be_v no_o god_n 27._o caluin_n &_o alij_fw-la passim_fw-la in_o 2._o thessaly_n 2_o 4._o caluin_n instit_fw-la book_n 4._o chap._n 7._o §._o 27._o that_o all_o thing_n write_v and_o teach_v of_o christ_n be_v lie_n and_o deceit_n that_o the_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o future_a life_n and_o the_o last_o resurrection_n be_v mere_a fable_n these_o and_o diverse_a other_o such_o monstrous_a untruth_n be_v forge_v by_o our_o adversary_n against_o we_o and_o this_o course_n they_o be_v constrain_v to_o take_v that_o they_o may_v have_v something_o to_o impugn_v for_o if_o they_o shall_v plain_o and_o sincere_o deliver_v what_o we_o hold_v the_o force_n and_o brightness_n of_o truth_n itself_o will_v easy_o at_o her_o only_a sight_n weaken_v yea_o overthrow_v all_o their_o impugnation_n and_o like_v as_o the_o first_o beginner_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n run_v these_o unconscionable_a i_o may_v say_v shameful_a course_n so_o their_o successor_n always_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o same_o and_o even_o those_o of_o our_o day_n obstinate_o refuse_v to_o accept_v of_o any_o reasonable_a answer_n or_o to_o understand_v the_o truth_n insist_v in_o the_o step_n of_o their_o predecessor_n for_o whereas_o if_o they_o be_v but_o indifferent_a they_o may_v well_o perceive_v that_o we_o who_o neither_o fear_n of_o death_n nor_o infamy_n and_o disgrace_n nor_o loss_n of_o liberty_n live_v and_o worldly_a good_n can_v move_v to_o do_v one_o act_n contrary_a to_o our_o religion_n will_v not_o for_o all_o the_o world_n deny_v any_o one_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n yet_o notwithstanding_o although_o we_o deny_v their_o false_a slander_n never_o so_o much_o yet_o they_o will_v needs_o have_v we_o to_o hold_v they_o as_o they_o say_v whether_o we_o will_v or_o no._n diverse_a impute_v unto_o we_o daily_o strange_a paradox_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o among_o other_o one_o william_n crashaw_n dedicatory_a anno_fw-la 1606._o in_o the_o epistle_n dedicatory_a have_v not_o long_o since_o publish_v a_o book_n accuse_v we_o of_o a_o horrible_a matter_n of_o fact_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o crime_n of_o corruption_n and_o forgery_n in_o the_o high_a degree_n so_o be_v his_o word_n his_o say_a book_n bear_v this_o title_n romish_n forgery_n and_o falsification_n together_o with_o catholic_a restitution_n by_o read_v of_o the_o content_n of_o it_o he_o that_o be_v not_o learned_a and_o acquaint_v with_o their_o deal_n may_v easy_o be_v draw_v and_o persuade_v not_o only_o to_o condemn_v we_o as_o notable_a corrupter_n and_o forger_n but_o further_o to_o imagine_v that_o we_o in_o former_a age_n have_v corrupt_v all_o the_o father_n work_n and_o consequent_o infer_v that_o their_o testimony_n can_v yield_v we_o no_o firm_a ground_n whereon_o to_o build_v our_o faith_n man_n crash_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n §._o see_v what_o see_v also_o §_o will_v these_o man_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v in_o this_o treatise_n nay_o crashaw_n himself_o do_v not_o only_o affirm_v that_o they_o have_v cause_n to_o suspect_v that_o we_o have_v so_o deal_v with_o the_o father_n because_o we_o have_v not_o spare_v as_o he_o say_v some_o as_o ancient_a as_o some_o father_n but_o also_o aver_v that_o it_o will_v be_v prove_v to_o the_o world_n view_n that_o we_o when_o we_o §._o but_o when_o have_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la corrupt_v almost_o all_o antiquity_n in_o so_o much_o that_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v what_o ground_n to_o stand_v upon_o either_o for_o counsel_n father_n decree_n or_o man_n writing_n and_o he_o add_v point_n §_o to_o end_v this_o point_n that_o he_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o ere_o long_a god_n will_v raise_v up_o some_o instrument_n of_o his_o glory_n who_o shall_v full_o discover_v to_o the_o world_n this_o treachery_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n by_o make_v it_o as_o apparent_a they_o have_v corrupt_v the_o father_n as_o i_o hope_v say_v he_o to_o do_v in_o this_o and_o the_o book_n ensue_v that_o they_o have_v corrupt_v all_o such_o late_a writer_n as_o they_o imagine_v any_o way_n to_o make_v against_o they_o thus_o crashaw_n for_o the_o resolution_n of_o which_o his_o false_a imputation_n as_o also_o for_o clear_v of_o our_o present_a practice_n which_o may_v seem_v to_o some_o to_o tend_v towards_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o antiquity_n i_o think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o spend_v some_o few_o line_n in_o prove_v these_o three_o point_n first_o that_o our_o practice_n in_o correct_v of_o book_n reprehend_v by_o crashaw_n be_v prudent_a and_o laudable_a second_o that_o our_o adversary_n if_o we_o offend_v in_o this_o be_v much_o more_o to_o be_v condemn_v for_o the_o like_a proceed_n in_o the_o same_o kind_n last_o that_o the_o father_n work_n be_v sincere_a and_o free_a from_o all_o corruption_n to_o declare_v the_o first_o i_o must_v first_o give_v my_o reader_n to_o understand_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n now_o have_v and_o ever_o have_v have_v authority_n to_o censure_n and_o condemn_v all_o such_o book_n as_o be_v publish_v and_o contain_v thing_n any_o way_n opposite_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o her_o faith_n and_o religion_n this_o first_o appear_v because_o she_o be_v supreme_a judge_n on_o earth_n of_o all_o controversy_n arise_v touch_v faith_n and_o religion_n and_o have_v jurisdiction_n over_o every_o christian_a from_o which_o it_o proceed_v that_o she_o condemn_v heresy_n and_o heretic_n wherefore_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o she_o have_v also_o authority_n to_o condemn_v the_o work_n of_o any_o heretic_n or_o other_o person_n whatsoever_o contain_v heresy_n or_o error_n opposite_a to_o her_o faith_n for_o much_o more_o it_o be_v to_o condemn_v
we_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o the_o particular_a opinion_n of_o some_o few_o private_a man_n or_o do_v we_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o doctrine_n by_o their_o testimony_n moreover_o suppose_v some_o follow_v those_o man_n in_o some_o one_o or_o two_o opinion_n be_v they_o present_o in_o all_o other_o point_n protestant_n or_o do_v it_o prove_v the_o protestant_a religion_n true_a church_n treatise_n of_o the_o definition_n and_o note_n of_o the_o church_n nothing_o less_o for_o as_o i_o will_v show_v hereafter_o neither_o wickliff_n nor_o hierome_n of_o prage_n nor_o john_n husse_n be_v protestant_n much_o less_o any_o that_o be_v in_o open_a profession_n catholic_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o church_n do_v not_o only_o in_o modern_a author_n correct_v proposition_n that_o be_v in_o plain_a term_n heretical_a but_o also_o as_o appear_v by_o our_o rule_n relate_v by_o crashaw_n such_o as_o be_v erroneous_a taste_v of_o heresy_n be_v offensive_a to_o godly_a ear_n or_o temerarious_a yea_o such_o as_o be_v wanton_a or_o dishonest_a superstitious_a tend_v to_o the_o infamy_n of_o any_o etc._n etc._n as_o i_o will_v declare_v anon_o beside_o this_o if_o our_o intention_n be_v to_o make_v the_o author_n seem_v altogether_o we_o and_o to_o take_v they_o as_o it_o be_v from_o the_o sectary_n who_o doctrine_n they_o seem_v to_o approve_v what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o publish_v in_o print_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n what_o we_o will_v have_v correct_v in_o their_o work_n be_v not_o this_o a_o plain_a confession_n that_o we_o dislike_v their_o manner_n of_o speech_n or_o their_o doctrine_n wherefore_o in_o this_o we_o rather_o help_v our_o adversary_n cause_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o say_a author_n be_v of_o any_o moment_n then_o weaken_v it_o and_o in_o very_a truth_n if_o we_o do_v it_o to_o any_o such_o end_n as_o they_o intend_v it_o be_v no_o wisdom_n to_o make_v our_o do_n know_v to_o the_o world_n but_o much_o more_o policy_n we_o shall_v show_v if_o we_o do_v it_o in_o private_a and_o never_o make_v any_o open_a mention_n of_o it_o but_o rather_o do_v deny_v it_o why_o then_o do_v we_o correct_v such_o book_n in_o very_a truth_n as_o be_v apparent_a for_o no_o other_o cause_n than_o i_o have_v partly_o rehearse_v before_o to_o wit_n principal_o that_o one_o faith_n and_o religion_n may_v be_v preserve_v among_o all_o sort_n and_o that_o no_o man_n embrace_v any_o doctrine_n as_o approve_a or_o tolerate_v in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o so_o approve_v and_o tolerate_v then_o also_o to_o avoid_v all_o superstition_n witchcraft_n corruption_n of_o manner_n and_o other_o such_o vice_n as_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o which_o hereafter_o but_o they_o say_v that_o we_o take_v upon_o we_o to_o correct_v bertramus_n a_o author_n who_o live_v in_o the_o church_n 700._o year_n since_o and_o rampegolus_n who_o flourish_v in_o the_o year_n 1418._o i_o answer_v that_o we_o neither_o do_v this_o to_o bereave_v our_o adversary_n of_o any_o testimony_n for_o as_o concern_v bertramus_n we_o common_o grant_v that_o book_n which_o go_v under_o his_o name_n to_o make_v for_o their_o doctrine_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n although_o some_o protestant_n seem_v to_o deny_v it_o nay_o further_o 212._o see_v the_o century_n writer_n centur._n 9_o c._n 4_o col_fw-fr 212._o many_o of_o the_o best_a learned_a man_n of_o our_o side_n acknowledge_v also_o in_o their_o public_a write_n the_o book_n to_o be_v his_o 65_o his_o pantaleon_n in_o chronographia_fw-la p._n 65_o although_o pantaleon_n a_o sacramentary_a number_n it_o not_o among_o his_o work_n and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a for_o our_o adversary_n although_o the_o book_n be_v never_o so_o much_o alter_v wherefore_o for_o this_o cause_n only_o that_o some_o good_a thing_n be_v contain_v in_o it_o together_o with_o the_o poison_n lest_o that_o man_n suck_v the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o we_o think_v it_o good_a to_o remove_v away_o that_o which_o be_v nought_o and_o leave_v they_o the_o good_a rampegolus_n be_v nothing_o like_o so_o ancient_a and_o beside_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o possivinus_fw-la at_o his_o book_n be_v write_v in_o a_o time_n not_o oppugn_v by_o such_o heresy_n as_o since_o be_v rise_v 115._o possivin_v to_o 1._o apparat_fw-la q._n sacr_n pag._n 114._o 115._o contain_v some_o error_n wherefore_o neither_o do_v we_o endeavour_v to_o conceal_v that_o in_o some_o point_n he_o seem_v to_o favour_v our_o adversary_n he_o add_v that_o this_o author_n have_v put_v into_o his_o work_n certain_a absurd_a thing_n or_o rather_o fable_n out_o of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n that_o he_o have_v many_o thing_n otherwise_o then_o they_o be_v in_o the_o bible_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o cite_v so_o sincere_o yea_o that_o sometime_o it_o be_v allege_v false_o that_o he_o have_v some_o thing_n apocryphal_a out_o of_o the_o 3._o book_n of_o esdras_n and_o out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o ciril_n of_o jerusalem_n to_o s._n augustine_n concern_v the_o death_n of_o s._n hierome_n beside_o this_o he_o accuse_v he_o of_o false_a allegation_n of_o doctor_n of_o solecism_n barbarisme_n and_o obscure_a phrase_n and_o see_v that_o it_o be_v a_o book_n which_o young_a preacher_n will_v much_o use_v if_o it_o be_v not_o forbid_v and_o that_o as_o it_o be_v like_a without_o choice_n of_o the_o good_a from_o the_o bad_a for_o want_v of_o learning_n i_o hope_v no_o man_n will_v blame_v we_o if_o we_o amend_v that_o which_o be_v amiss_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o first_o point_n now_o to_o come_v to_o the_o second_o point_n i_o must_v needs_o return_v m._n crashawes_n argument_n upon_o himself_o thus_o they_o who_o raze_v the_o record_n and_o falsify_v the_o monument_n of_o man_n writing_n alter_v the_o book_n of_o learned_a man_n after_o they_o be_v dead_a add_v and_o take_v out_o at_o their_o pleasure_n and_o namely_o take_v out_o such_o word_n sentence_n and_o whole_a discourse_n as_o make_v against_o they_o and_o add_v the_o contrary_a even_o whatsoever_o they_o can_v imagine_v to_o make_v for_o they_o incur_v no_o less_o crime_n than_o corruption_n and_o forgery_n in_o the_o high_a degree_n this_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o crashaw_n in_o the_o second_o page_n of_o his_o epistle_n dedicatory_a but_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n who_o be_v call_v protestant_n puritan_n etc._n etc._n have_v do_v so_o therefore_o they_o have_v incur_v the_o crime_n of_o corruption_n or_o forgery_n in_o the_o high_a degree_n m._n crashaw_n must_v pardon_v i_o if_o i_o proceed_v not_o in_o form_n of_o law_n by_o accusation_n declaration_n and_o proof_n as_o he_o do_v because_o i_o have_v never_o yet_o be_v preacher_n at_o the_o temple_n the_o proof_n of_o my_o minor_a proposition_n if_o i_o shall_v run_v through_o author_n which_o they_o have_v corrupt_v cite_v the_o word_n and_o sentence_n leave_v out_o or_o add_v will_v rise_v to_o a_o great_a volume_n wherefore_o brief_o only_o i_o accuse_v they_o of_o corrupt_v after_o this_o sort_n the_o history_n of_o sigonius_n de_fw-fr regno_fw-la italiae_fw-la of_o osorius_n de_fw-fr rebus_fw-la gestis_fw-la emanuëlis_fw-la regis_fw-la and_o of_o castineda_n who_o supply_v that_o which_o want_v for_o some_o year_n after_o osorius_n end_v of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o diverse_a other_o and_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o to_o the_o unlearned_a english_a sectary_n i_o accuse_v our_o english_a protestant_n for_o corrupt_a s._n augustine_n meditation_n his_o prayer_n and_o manuel_n the_o meditation_n of_o granada_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1602._o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n the_o imitation_n of_o christ_n the_o christian_a directory_n etc._n etc._n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o book_n this_o correction_n or_o alteration_n be_v confess_v i_o reply_v that_o so_o likewise_o in_o our_o indices_fw-la expurgatorij_fw-la and_o also_o common_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o such_o book_n as_o we_o correct_v we_o acknowledge_v the_o correction_n but_o do_v they_o this_o in_o all_o their_o work_n sure_o no._n and_o for_o example_n i_o name_v the_o meditation_n of_o granada_n in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o alteration_n for_o they_o be_v plain_o set_v forth_o in_o his_o name_n as_o though_o they_o be_v true_o and_o sincere_o he_o whereas_o the_o translator_n or_o rather_o the_o falsifier_n or_o corrupter_n have_v leave_v out_o whole_a discourse_n yea_o i_o may_v almost_o say_v whole_a meditation_n and_o add_v what_o please_v himself_o to_o make_v he_o speak_v like_o a_o protestant_n neither_o do_v they_o deal_v only_o so_o with_o we_o but_o also_o with_o their_o own_o brother_n and_o that_o sometime_o in_o principal_a matter_n for_o example_n the_o lutheran_n protestant_n in_o their_o conference_n or_o synod_n
cyprian_n epist_n 40._o 70._o 55._o 69._o 71._o 73._o see_v he_o also_o in_o exhortat_fw-la ad_fw-la martirium_fw-la cap._n 11._o the_o century_n writer_n who_o be_v esteem_v very_o diligent_a searcher_n of_o antiquity_n tax_v s._n cyprian_n for_o his_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o pope_n supreamacy_n second_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n cyprian_n teach_v in_o this_o book_n agree_v exceed_v well_o with_o that_o which_o be_v find_v throughout_o all_o his_o epistle_n in_o which_o we_o find_v the_o same_o sentence_n almost_o in_o the_o very_a same_o word_n which_o james_n deni_v to_o be_v in_o his_o manuscript_n copy_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n one_o church_n and_o one_o chair_n found_v upon_o peter_n that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o s._n peter_n that_o our_o lord_n choose_v he_o the_o first_o or_o chief_a that_o he_o institute_v the_o origin_n of_o unity_n from_o he_o etc._n etc._n peradventure_o some_o man_n will_v say_v these_o epistle_n be_v also_o corrupt_v but_o first_o i_o think_v they_o be_v not_o find_v otherwise_o in_o the_o manuscript_n copy_n mention_v by_o master_n james_n than_o they_o be_v in_o the_o print_a book_n for_o be_v they_o it_o be_v like_a he_o will_v not_o have_v pass_v it_o with_o silence_n as_o he_o do_v second_o neither_o perkins_n nor_o any_o other_o affirm_v these_o epistle_n to_o be_v corrupt_v thirdlie_o one_o of_o these_o epistle_n in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v that_o our_o lord_n do_v choose_v s._n peter_n the_o first_o or_o chief_a and_o that_o upon_o he_o he_o build_v his_o church_n be_v cite_v by_o s._n augustine_n quintum_fw-la august_n to_o 7._o the_o bapt_a count_n donat._n cap._n 1._o cipr._n ep_v 72._o ad_fw-la quintum_fw-la who_o also_o allege_v those_o very_a word_n as_o s._n cyprian_n which_o be_v in_o the_o print_a copy_n to_o wit_n nam_fw-la nec_fw-la petrus_n quem_fw-la primum_fw-la dominus_fw-la elegit_fw-la &_o super_fw-la quem_fw-la edificavit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la svam_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o neither_o s._n peter_n who_o our_o lord_n choose_v the_o first_o or_o chief_a and_o upon_o who_o he_o build_v his_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o moreover_o after_o s._n cyprian_n word_n he_o add_v himself_o behold_v where_o cyprian_n rehearse_v which_o also_o we_o have_v learn_v in_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n peter_n in_o who_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o apostle_n through_o so_o excellent_a grace_n be_v high_a than_o other_o etc._n etc._n thus_o s._n augustine_n of_o which_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o this_o epistle_n among_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v not_o corrupt_v and_o yet_o here_o be_v almost_o say_v as_o much_o in_o substance_n of_o this_o matter_n as_o be_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la final_o the_o word_n which_o james_n will_v have_v exclude_v from_o s._n cyprian_n book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la be_v so_o agreeable_a to_o this_o holy_a father_n stile_n and_o phrase_n and_o so_o fit_v his_o discourse_n that_o no_o man_n can_v almost_o suspect_v they_o to_o be_v add_v but_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v how_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o they_o be_v want_v in_o the_o manu-script_n copy_n mention_v by_o m._n james_n in_o very_a truth_n if_o there_o be_v such_o ancient_a copy_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o raze_v out_o of_o they_o i_o can_v but_o think_v that_o they_o be_v write_v out_o before_o the_o art_n of_o print_v be_v invent_v by_o some_o wicliffian_n heretic_n or_o if_o they_o come_v out_o of_o some_o foreign_a country_n by_o some_o schismatic_a or_o other_o that_o hold_v with_o some_o german_a emperor_n against_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o wicliffian_n be_v very_o potent_a and_o prevail_v much_o in_o our_o country_n we_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o that_o which_o be_v say_v by_o stowe_n in_o his_o chronicle_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 1414._o and_o 1377._o and_o walsingham_n write_v 3._o walsingham_n anno_fw-la ult._n edward_n 3._o that_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n in_o particular_a be_v cold_a in_o resist_v he_o 1378._o walsingham_n in_o vita_fw-la richardi_fw-la 2._o anno_fw-la 1378._o nay_o their_o coldness_n be_v such_o that_o gregory_n xi_o pope_n in_o the_o year_n 1378._o write_v his_o breve_fw-la to_o it_o and_o reprehend_v they_o of_o the_o say_a university_n for_o their_o coldness_n and_o slackness_n a_o index_n or_o table_n of_o all_o the_o chapter_n and_o section_n of_o this_o treatise_n the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o old_a religion_n chapter_n 1._o of_o the_o first_o ground_n of_o catholic_a religion_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n govern_v all_o thing_n page_n 1._o section_n 1._o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n page_n 2._o sect._n 2._o almighty_a god_n have_v care_n of_o worldly_a affair_n and_o rule_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o divine_a providence_n page_n 10._o chap._n 2._o of_o the_o second_o ground_n of_o our_o religion_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v immortal_a and_o that_o it_o shall_v either_o be_v reward_v everlasting_o in_o heaven_n or_o punish_v everlasting_o in_o hell_n page_n 12._o chap._n 3._o of_o a_o three_o principal_a ground_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o wit_n that_o christian_a religion_n only_o be_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n page_n 16._o chap._n 4._o that_o among_o christian_n they_o only_o that_o profess_v and_o embrace_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o do_v true_o worship_v god_n page_n 24._o chap._n 5._o sect._n 1_o of_o the_o definition_n and_o condition_n of_o true_a faith_n p._n 28._o sect._n 2._o that_o faith_n be_v a_o most_o firm_a assent_n of_o the_o understanding_n page_n 29._o sect._n 3_o faith_n be_v of_o thing_n incomprehensible_a by_o natural_a reason_n and_o consequent_o obscure_a page_n 30._o sect._n 4._o by_o true_a christian_a faith_n we_o believe_v such_o mystery_n as_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o his_o church_n page_n 32._o sect._n 5._o that_o true_a faith_n be_v build_v upon_o divine_a authority_n page_n 34._o sect._n 6._o beside_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n some_o infallible_a propounder_n of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v necessary_a and_o that_o they_o be_v propound_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n page_n 36._o chap._n 6._o sect._n 1_o of_o the_o supreme_a and_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n page_n 38._o sect._n 2._o the_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n not_o by_o writing_n be_v commit_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o apostle_n page_n 39_o sect._n 3_o the_o church_n can_v stray_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n receive_v nor_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o general_a precept_n of_o manner_n which_o be_v prove_v first_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n direct_v she_o in_o all_o truth_n page_n 42._o sect._n 4._o the_o same_o be_v prove_v by_o other_o argument_n page_n 44._o sect._n 5._o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o other_o proof_n bring_v for_o the_o infallible_a and_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o church_n consider_v as_o it_o comprehend_v all_o faithful_a christian_n that_o be_v and_o have_v be_v since_o christ_n ascension_n or_o since_o the_o apostle_n day_n but_o unto_o the_o present_a church_n of_o all_o age_n page_n 52._o sect._n 6._o that_o the_o same_o testimony_n and_o proof_n convince_v a_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v every_o article_n of_o faith_n not_o only_o concern_v certain_a of_o the_o principal_n page_n 56._o sect._n 7._o that_o to_o salvation_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o believe_v the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n and_o every_o article_n thereof_o page_n 58._o chap._n 7._o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o first_o particular_a ground_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n page_n 61._o sect._n 1_o how_o the_o scripture_n be_v know_v to_o be_v canonical_a page_n 61._o sect._n 2._o concern_v the_o sense_n or_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o first_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v hard_a and_o receive_v diverse_a interpretation_n p._n 67._o sect._n 3_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v false_o understand_v and_o that_o every_o private_a man_n may_v err_v in_o the_o understanding_n of_o they_o page_n 69._o sect._n 4._o that_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n false_o interpret_v be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n page_n 72._o sect._n 5._o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v learn_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o be_v the_o true_a judge_n thereof_o page_n 75._o sect._n 6._o a_o objection_n against_o the_o premise_n be_v answer_v and_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o last_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v discuss_v page_n 78._o chap._n 8._o concern_v the_o second_o particular_a ground_n of_o catholic_a